Fake Dates N Ice Skates - Janisha Boswell
Fake Dates N Ice Skates - Janisha Boswell
Fake Dates N Ice Skates - Janisha Boswell
OceanofPDF.com
FAKE DATES
&
ICE SKATES
JANISHA BOSWELL
Copyright © 2023 Janisha Boswell. Art by Ayela Malik.
ISBN: 9798391771531
OceanofPDF.com
This one is for my friends.
You can make anywhere feel like a home by
simply being around you.
WREN & MILES SOUNDTRACK
Delicate...........Taylor Swift
Hell N Back.............Bakar
Everyone Adores You (quiet)..........Matt Maltese
Jump Then Fall (Taylor's Version).........Taylor Swift
Glitter......... BENNE
Sparks........Coldplay
Pink + White........Frank Ocean
Reckless Driving........ Lizzy McAlpine
Lost.......Frank Ocean
Sex on Fire.......Kings of Leon
Video Games.......Lana Del Rey
Gravity......John Mayer
Christmas Tree Farm......Taylor Swift
Cocktails for two.......Betty Carter
At Last.......Etta James
Movement.......Hozier
New Year's Day.........Taylor Swift
Save Your Tears........The Weeknd
This is me trying......Taylor Swift
So it Goes........Taylor Swift
You Should Know Where I'm Coming From........BANKS
When The Party's Over.........Billie Eilish
Gilded Lily......Cults
Flying........Cody Fry
The Feels.........Labrinth
We Are Young...........fun.
Glue Song (feat. Clairo)..........beabadoobee
Matilda.......Harry Styles
Ivy...... Frank Ocean
Golden Hour......JVKE
Lover - First Dance Remix.....Taylor Swift
Fine Line......Harry Styles
You Are in Love......Taylor Swift
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 1
WREN
“Sorry, could you repeat that?” I ask again in a small voice, hoping
that pretending I can’t hear them means that this isn’t happening. This can’t
be happening, right?
When I was told I had a meeting with the dean and Coach Darcy, I
thought maybe I was getting an award. A well done for not losing your shit
at your stupid ex-boyfriend / partner for fucking up your routine, handed to
me with an oversized trophy and a bouquet of flowers. “Oh, you shouldn’t
have,” I’d respond coyly with a dashing smile. I would love to see that on a
trophy. Or something along those lines. But no. Instead, I'm getting some
really sucky news.
“Wren, that’s the third time you’ve said that today. Are you okay?”
Coach asks in her thick French accent. Her words almost fly right over my
head. I can see sympathy taking over her expression as her deep-set brown
eyes flicker with worry. She probably thinks I'm insane. Honestly, it feels
like I'm slowly getting there.
“Yes, I'm fine. Just…adjusting,” I reply, looking around the office at the
ugly brown furniture that I have grown to loathe. I always get chills when I
come in here. It has an unwelcoming ambience, and it is always too cold.
Something unnerving lingers in the air as I try not to focus on it.
“You won’t need to adjust to anything if you find a plan to work around
this. It’s just a misstep. That’s all,” Coach explains with a warm smile. I
return the smile, but I can feel mine wobble.
The ‘misstep’ that she’s referring to is the fact that I might not be able to
skate anymore after our Winter Showcase in December. North University in
Salt Lake City, comically located in the south, is famously known for its
hockey team and figure skaters. Naturally, being a winter city, people
gravitated towards our winter sports more than anything. We enter the
championships every year like all the other colleges, but we also host
seasonal events for the students and wider community. Although we have a
rink each for the hockey and the skaters, people have taken much more of
an interest in the hockey team than us.
We only have five skaters left on our team after most of them dropped
skating to do a full major or just left all together. Last year, each
competition and each event were met with enthusiasm from the students
and the community but after Augustus and I got into the regional
championships and lost horrifically, no one has batted an eye at us since. I
was shunned and embarrassed, not ready to brave another competition or
performance. The school run the events and the team purely on ticket prices
and charitable donations since it’s been loved for so many generations but if
no one turns up then we’re out of funds; meaning our rink can easily be
handed over to the hockey team. The other skaters have lost their passion
and as much as I’d hate to admit it, I am too.
I double major with Creative Writing but dropping skating would mean
admitting defeat to my mom, NU alma mater and previous figure skater,
which is the last thing I can do.
“How are you expecting me to fix this? It shouldn’t be my responsibility
to keep the courses that you teach afloat,” I snap, not sure how my tone
climbed up so fiercely. I take in a deep breath, trying to regain my cool. I
want to skate again, not get kicked out.
“It’s a joint effort,” the dean says.
I turn to look at her but her dense expression makes my stomach turn.
Even when she looks defeated and angry, she still looks beautiful.
Irritatingly so. Her bone structures are strong; telling stories that you want
to hear so badly, constantly drawing people in. “We’re doing everything we
can on our end, you need to do the same. You will need to create some sort
of buzz around it and people will start turning up again. It should be easy if
you really care about skating.”
That’s just the thing. I don’t.
Not as much as I used to.
My mom has loved figure skating her whole life because her mom
forced her into it. After she got pregnant with Austin, she tried to get back
into skating, but she was injured in a minor car accident and her knee has
not been the same since. She was on the road to recovery just before I was
born and threw that idea out of the window. Austin was supposed to skate
too, but she never got used to dancing on the ice, so she has been training
her whole life to be a professional ballet dancer. The next best thing. It has
always been skating and nothing else. School was always seen as a
secondary importance. “Your ability to dance on ice is the best gift you
could give to the world,” she would often say. I’ve never been given any
opportunity to do anything else so it’s always had to be skating.
I don’t hate the way it feels on the ice. I love the adrenaline. The rush.
But it’s so easy to put up with it now instead of majoring in something I’m
not sure I’m actually good at. That’s the annoying thing about me — if I
know I’m not perfect at it, I’m not going to try.
“Fine. I’ll figure out some magical way to make everyone turn up to our
performances,” I say, sarcasm dripping my tone. Coach claps her hands, a
large grin spreading across her heart-shaped face as she beams at me.
“I knew you’d figure it out,” Coach replies, winking at me, matching
my sarcasm. She hates these meetings as much as I do.
We had a feeling this would happen, but we’d hoped the dean would
pull through at the last minute and change the way our program is run. I
flash a smile to the dean before waltzing out the room with a headache and
no clue what I’m going to do.
My headache intensifies when I see my two best friends rushing
towards me from their seats in the waiting area. I look behind them to see a
guy sitting next to where they were, his head springing up at their shrill
voices. Judging by his jersey I can tell he’s a hockey player. Strangely, I feel
bad that he had to sit next to those two for the last twenty minutes who no
doubt talked the entire time.
“Oh my God! What happened?” Kennedy exclaims the second our eyes
connect.
She brings her long arms around me as her wild brown hair bounces off
her shoulders. Scarlett, on the other hand, comes next to my other side, her
hands planted firmly at her sides, her silky black hair tucked neatly behind
her ears. I know she’s not going to embrace me as affectionally as Kennedy,
but she gives me an encouraging smile. I wait until we’re outside in the
courtyard before speaking. I explain the situation to them which is naturally
met with sighs of “What the fuck?” and “Shit.”
“They can’t do that. That’s such bullshit!” Kennedy shouts, her arms
still tight around my shoulder as if she’s my emotional support animal.
Scarlett doesn’t say much but I can tell she’s working over plans in her
head.
This is how we work. How we’ve always worked since high school. I
have the problems; Kennedy screams about it and throws out arbitrary
solutions while Scarlett thinks of a plausible plan which we usually stick to.
When I'm not the one with problems, I usually take a middle ground and try
to centre the two different approaches they take.
“Well apparently they can,” I mumble, kicking the crunchy leaves
beneath me as we walk towards our apartment off campus.
Living together has given us the opportunity to get to know each other
the way we didn’t in school. Scarlett and I have known each other our entire
lives as our parents have but Kennedy moved up from South Carolina in
high school and we’ve been inseparable ever since. The second we set eyes
on each other in English class, it was a cliché waiting to happen. The
blonde, the raven, and the curly haired brunette. It just made sense. We just
made sense. Other than our other best friend Gigi who has lived across from
my childhood home my whole life, these girls have kept me sane over the
past nineteen years.
Our majors are so different, but it only makes our dynamic stronger.
Scarlett is a business and fashion major while Ken studies art and
photography. We all knew we were going to NU as soon as Austin told us
about all the hot guys that she met here while we were in high school. Still,
being here over a year and we are yet to meet these hot guys.
“So, what are you going to do?” Scarlett asks, her voice calmer and
more levelled than Kennedy’s frantic one. Our walk slows as we get closer
home, the chilly air urging us forward. We trudge up the steps to our floor
since the elevator takes way to long.
“I’ve got no fucking clue. I’ll start a petition or something,” I say lazily,
waving my hands vaguely in the air when we reach the top. Kennedy nods,
her face becoming red as she smiles. She unlocks the door and I slip into it
moving out of the way for Scarlett to pass but she doesn’t move.
She stands in the doorway, arms planted by her side, her neat hair still a
mess from the September breeze. Her eyebrows furrowed and her jaw
clenched, she pins me with a strange look.
“What have you done to her?” Kennedy asks from behind me, her tone
bored and used to her daily antics. Scarlett might be rational and insanely
smart, but she is so dramatic sometimes.
“Nothing,” I say, turning back to a puffy faced Kennedy as she removes
her layers. “What’s wrong, Scar?”
“You can’t do a petition. I’m refusing to let you do that. Take it from the
girl who wasted her whole final project last year on a petition which landed
her a B. A fucking B for getting 18,000 signatures,” Scarlett groans, finally
starting to walk inside. I close the door behind her as we make walk further
in, shutting out the cold.
‘A B isn’t bad, Scar,” Kennedy says shrugging. I shoot her a look to
shut it down, not having the mental capacity or emotional stability to get
into the argument. Again.
Scarlett is the youngest and only daughter of three sons, so competition
was always high in her household. She’s constantly trying her hardest to
prove she was as good as them. You wouldn’t need to look at her twice to
realise that she’s smarter than all of them combined. I just wish she could
get that in her head. She’s confident around us until she’s around her family
and shrinks in their presence.
“It’s bad for me,” Scarlett retorts shuddering as she walks into the open
living room and kitchen. “A B is like asking for ketchup but getting
homemade mayonnaise instead. Both disgusting and
disappointing and most likely will land you a few hours in the bathroom.”
“That literally makes no sense,” Kennedy concedes unconvinced.
Scarlett and I take off our outside clothes and adjust to the warmth of the
apartment. Autumn and winter here are hell but there is no better feeling
than coming in from the cold. Once I'm free of my layers, I plunge down on
the couch, defeated.
“I need to think of something, like, yesterday. If I can’t skate, I can’t do
anything else,” I sigh into the air as the girls walk around me, probably
looking for food.
“Why don’t you just do your creative writing course? Then you can
actually get some feedback on the work you do outside of class. Instead of
getting totally biased opinions from us and Gigi,” Kennedy suggests,
flopping on the beanbag across from me. She tucks her legs beneath her, a
box of Cheerio's in her hand.
Her suggestion makes me feel sick. It does anytime anyone mentions
dropping skating and actually having to do real schoolwork. The thought of
being brave enough to do something I have always enjoyed but never really
knowing if I was good at it makes my stomach turn.
Growing up, on my way to competitions or practice, I would always
have a paperback in my hands, or I’d make up stories of my own. Creating
a completely fictional and magical world while my parents went through
their divorce was the best escape I could ask for. Their divorce was messier
than their marriage, but I wasn’t the only thirteen-year-old who had
divorced parents. So, I spent the time that wasn’t on the ice, nose deep in
my own world. I’ve uploaded embarrassing stories onto Wattpad and other
sites but even growing a little fandom, it has never felt like it would stick. I
could snap out of inspiration at any moment and that dream could easily die
That thought terrifies me. Whether I like it or not, I can always skate.
“Doing that would mean I would need to be a good writer. And that also
means admitting defeat to my mother of all people,” I say with a shiver.
“Oh shit, I forgot. How did she take the news or was she in on it too?”
Kennedy bursts out. I shift uncomfortably in my seat, not really wanting to
talk about her. My mom's ‘encouragement’ amounts to the same force of
tiny rats pulling at my hair, forcing me into doing things I don’t want to do.
“Well, the dean said that if I care enough about skating, I should be able
to figure it out. But my mom said nothing, as always. She’s probably on the
deans’ side,” I say, knowing it’ll get a reaction out of one of them.
“Ugh, Wren. You’re so annoying. Why do you talk about them as if
they’re two separate people? It’s confusing,” Scarlett groans with a huff as
she drops next to me on the couch. Bingo. I ignore her pouty face and look
at Kennedy innocently.
In some ways, my mom has always been my own personal dean.
Constantly on my case, pushing me and Austin to do better, giving me strict
curfews and just breathing down my neck twenty-four seven. Since joining
NU, there has been no difference other than now other students have to face
her wrath as well. If it wasn’t for the responsibility, I would gain by moving
out, I’m sure she would have made me stay closer to home somehow.
Seeing her at school almost every day is enough mom-ness for me.
“Ken, are you confused?” I ask condescendingly. She shakes her head,
her mouth stuffed with Cheerio's. I turn back to Scarlett who has the
expression of a miserable child. “See, it’s only confusing you, my darling.”
Scarlett sticks her tongue out at me as I throw my head back onto the
headrest, trying to centre all of the thoughts that are whirling around my
brain and tugging on my lungs. I focus on breathing properly as I take in
deep breaths thinking about how the hell I’m going to fix this.
I must have dozed off because before I know it, Kennedy is wheeling in
The Whiteboard into the living room, taking up nearly all of her short
stature. The Whiteboard - always with a capital T and W - has been a
saviour in times like these.
Surprisingly, whiteboards are popular gifts for business students like
Scarlett who, last Christmas, was gifted two mega whiteboards. Naturally,
we decided that we could make use of one of them. Since then, we’ve used
it for our iconic pros and cons lists for dates, breakups, changing shampoos
or trying to find out a place to eat that isn’t Nero’s Pizzeria. No one has seen
the contents of what we write on here as it’s something so sacred to us.
Some people think it’s sweet but others thing it’s completely insane. If we
didn’t have The Whiteboard our lives would have been derailed by now.
“Scarlett, would you take the honours of being our scribe?” Kennedy
announces, holding out the oversized whiteboard pen as if it’s the holy grail.
Scarlett’s face lights up, her green eyes squinting as her sharp cheekbones
rise up.
“I would love nothing more,” she replies, jumping up and retrieving the
pen. “Operation ‘Save Wren from dropping out of skating even though she
secretly hates it’ is underway.”
I throw her a sarcastic smile, thinking twice before lobbing a cushion at
her which she dodges.
“Maybe we should just paraphrase?” Kennedy suggests, unimpressed as
she returns to her seat in the beanbag. Scarlett continues writing out the
name on the whiteboard regardless.
“Or maybe we should just not assume how much I absolutely love
skating all together,” I counter, earning me unconvinced glances from the
two of them.
I can tell it’s going to be a long day and it’s only four in the evening.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 2
MILES
“Sorry, what? Could you say that again?” I ask the dean, shaking my
head to get my eyes to refocus from the brown walls in the office to her
disappointed face.
Maybe taking shots before I came was not the best idea. I was
convinced that I was about to get kicked out anyway so I thought one or ten
wouldn’t hurt. That’s the same thing I’ve been telling myself for the last
three months anyway and nothing bad has happened. Yet. I would rather be
kicked out than hear whatever Dean Hackerly is saying right now.
“What is wrong with you kids today? Are there some intoxicating fumes
radiating off the ice that’s effecting your hearing? You are the fourth person
today to ask me to repeat myself,” the dean snaps.
Jesus. What’s her problem? I heard once that if you don’t know how to
answer something, asking the person to repeat themselves is a good way to
buy yourself some time. Judging on my first try of this so-called genius tip,
I make a mental note not to do it again.
“Maybe you should talk louder,” I whisper, not fully registering why. I
know I shouldn’t have said it when Coach Tucker glares from his seat next
to me.
For reasons I can’t explain, all I can do is stare at the photos dotted
around the office. The muddy brown colour of the walls is sickly but the
family pictures she has in her frames are doing weird things to my chest.
Not in a Mommy Issues kind of way — well, sort of — but more in a
curious way. There’s one girl in nearly all her photos, around my age,
blonde and fucking gorgeous. Everywhere I look I feel like her green eyes
are following me. Drinking only makes me forgetful and terribly horny. I
can only blame myself for that.
“Mr Tucker and I were saying that we think it’s best for you to stay off
the ice for a while.” The deans voice brings me back to reality. This is
probably the third time she has said it, but it still doesn’t feel real. “We’ve
noticed a slip in your grades and in your performance since…” She
hesitates but the three people in this room know what she is about to say so
she doesn’t.
I don’t know what I would do if I heard someone else say his name
again, soaked with remorse. Yet, I can’t tell which is worse — actually
saying it or being too afraid to. I think I prefer the latter. I shift in my seat
uncomfortably, my jersey suddenly feeling like it’s suffocating me. I force
myself to breathe but it only makes the gnawing feeling worse.
“I know. I said I would get back into it when we last spoke. I really am
trying,” I say, trying my best to explain myself which is only half a lie.
I did say I would work better on myself but the part of actually doing it
hasn’t been working out so well. I quit my job at Nero’s so I could focus on
school and hockey, but I’ve not done either of those things. It’s easy to say
you’ll stop drinking after having one more. Just one. It’s also just as easy to
delay and delay assignments that were due months before everything
happened. I know it’s sick to use the grief card but at times I feel like I can’t
get anything done without thinking of him. Even then, when the memories
come back, everything else is discarded and I allow myself to cry and rage.
“Listen, Miles, we know you miss him. We all do, but you’ve had a few
weeks off the ice and out of class. We hoped that you’d back into playing
but it’s been three weeks since the semester started and I’ve not seen you
down at the rink once,” Coach says, flashing me the same sympathetic grin
everyone has been since it happened.
I don’t protest because it’s true. The last time I was on that rink, I had
just finished playing one of my best games with my favourite people. Since
then, I’ve not been fully there on the ice, constantly spacing out until I get
put on the bench then I stopped going all together. The thought of going out
there again, without him, felt like going to sleep knowing you will have a
nightmare. Like knowingly bringing a knife to a gun fight.
I’m not going to put myself in that position, freak about and embarrass
myself, because I could never show my face again. Instead, I’ve spent the
better half of three months holed up in my bedroom with a mini fridge
stocked with beer. I know it’s pathetic and as Evan says, ‘It’s not cute
anymore.’ He’s right but what else can I do? I’m sure that if I get back on
the ice, my legs will become languid, and I’ll have to crawl off.
“It’s just hard, Coach. I am trying,” I say again, a lot quieter and less
ballsy than I started out.
“I know you are, Davis, but I need committed and healthy players on
my team. When you’re ready to come back, there will be a spot waiting for
you.”
“I understand.” I try to keep my head up as high as I can.
I can do this right? An extended vacation is what this is. The guys
would kill to have some more time off instead of battling it out in the rink.
I’ll spend a little more time drinking and then I’ll get back to training and
studying. As soon as I can get him out of my head. People do this all the
time. They lose someone, grieve, and they get over it. Somehow.
My chair whines against the floor as I get up out of my seat, taking a
last glance at the girl in the photo. Hackerly winces when the uncomfortable
sound reaches her.
“Oh, and Miles, in the meantime please take up some extra studying and
make sure you’re attending all your classes. You can attend hockey practice
if you would like but it is not mandatory. You will notice that you have
plenty of time to spend on the other half of your course.”
I smile through gritted teeth and nod, knowing it’s better to hold my
tongue. There go my plans.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 3
MILES
I lock my phone and the girls both come into the room, returning to
their previous positions. Scarlett offers me some of my chips, but I shake
my head, straightening the laptop on the couch next to me.
“Why are you smiling like that?” Kennedy asks with an amused
expression, blinking up from me in my lap. All I have to say is ‘Gigi’ and
they both laugh and sigh at the same time. “What’s the update?”
“Not much. I’m going to call her later to talk about The Last Tear,” I
reply. “Mr D is sick again.”
“I think he’s constantly poisoning himself so he can get out of her
house,” Scarlett says matter-of-factly. “He’s been sick too many times for it
to be a coincidence.”
“I agree. When I went for lunch with her last weekend, she told me that
he ran away. Again,” Kennedy muses.
We all have very different relationships with Gigi but that’s why she’s
such a special friend for us. Even though we’ve known each other our
whole lives, whenever we had petty arguments, Gigi was always the one
who kept us together. She always pulled us back to each other. If I could
find some way to pull away all of her anxieties and get her to live with us, I
would do it in a heartbeat. I know how comfortable she is at home and those
anxieties are what make Gigi, Gigi.
“Whatever. Whether Mr. Dixie is an undercover spy or not, Gigi loves
him with her whole being. It’s not hard being a writer and a cat-mom,” I say
defensively.
“I can’t disagree with that,” Scarlett nods. She points to the laptop like
an eager child. “Read. Now.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 5
MILES
I can’t figure out how I ended up here and why I can’t move away. I
was wondering around, trying to find something to do with myself after
finishing class. I know I should probably go home and study but as soon as
I heard her skates on the ice and the frustrated grunts coming from the rink,
I couldn’t look away. Not now. I’ve fallen too deep.
I stand, completely and utterly captivated, watching her glide and turn.
She speeds up her pace, does a fancy spin and then comes down hard on the
ice, grunting and curling her hands into little fists. Why does it turn me on
when she’s angry? She skates towards the end of the rink, holding onto the
sides, taking a deep breath before continuing the same routine I’ve seen her
do over three times.
I think back to what Xavier said the other night when Wren and I first
spoke. As much as I hate to admit it, he was right. I’ve seen her around
more often than usual, over the past week. I’ve been dying to speak to her
again but each time she’s around she’s either with those two girls or she
doesn’t notice me all together. The fact that she’s cold and dismissive only
makes me want her more. Something about seeing her here now feels more
intimate. Watching somebody dance like this is like peeling back layers of
them. Exposing them.
“How long have you been standing there, you weirdo?” she asks, still
mid spin. I walk out of my not so hidden hiding place and come into view. I
move to the edge of the rink, leaning my forearms on the railing.
“How could you tell it was me?” I ask, amused. She continues gliding
and turning, not looking at me completely.
“Even when I’m spinning, I can still see, you know.” Her voice is strong
even though she has been working without a break for what seems like
hours. “What are you doing here?”
“I don’t know,” I admit.
She stops her routine abruptly and drifts towards me in her tight pink
leotard. She stops right in front of me, her arms across her chest, her cheeks
red and puffy, breathing heavily. Just by looking at her my heartbeat triples
in pace. Fuck.
“How come you keep showing up everywhere the second my life turns
to shit?” Wren asks without missing a beat.
“I was thinking the same thing about you.” I grin. She scoffs, rolling her
eyes. If I had no self-control, I would’ve jumped over the railing that’s
separating us, taking her in my arms. I just want to be close to her in any
way. Luckily for the both of us, I have more composure than that, so I lie.
“I’ve got to go to practice.”
She cocks her head to the side. “There isn’t a practice on today.”
“I didn’t know you knew my schedule, Wren. If I didn’t know any
better, I’d think you’re starting to like me,” I tease, loving the way her face
turns red.
“The last thing that should be on your mind is me liking you,” she
retorts, taking out her hair from its bun. She lets it fall before quickly
gathering it up again into a looser one. Fuck me, she's beautiful.
“Right, what should be on my mind then?” I tilt my head to the side.
“I don’t know. Maybe start my doing something that doesn’t make you
stink of beer. Why would come here when you’ve been drinking? It’s like
you don’t even care about playing again,” she snaps. Her tone shocks me.
I’ve only had maybe three drinks to psych myself up to go into class
today. I told myself I wasn’t going to have any more for the rest of the day,
and I intend on keeping that promise. I kind of like that she cares even when
she’s acting like she doesn’t.
“Well, I’m not playing so there’s no reason for me not to drink. I’ll be
fine,” I say, waving my hands around vaguely. She drops her arms from her
chest, rolling her eyes.
“And you think you’ll be able to play quicker if you drink more?”
“Why do you care? I didn’t come here for a lecture. If I wanted one, I
would’ve stayed at home."
“Then why are you really here?” she challenges. I wait a beat, not
meeting her eyes.
“I just finished class and I could hear you in here, so I thought I’d say
hi.” I tell the truth this time because I know she will see right through me.
She lets out a disbelieving “huh,” mostly saying it to herself but I catch it
anyway. “What?”
She looks at me, her brown-green eyes boring into me.
“Nothing,” she says, shaking her head slightly. I wait, giving her and
unconvinced glance, knowing there's more she isn't saying. “This isn’t
related at all, but can I have your number?”
There it is. I knew this was all an act. The one where she plays hard to
get. She cold and fierce and harsh but it only makes me more drawn to her. I
want to know every thought inside her brain. Why she is the way she is.
How she can look through me so easily. I’ve never met anyone so defiant as
her and it just turns me on.
“It’s not for me. Well…it is. My friends would kill me if I didn’t get it,”
she rambles, rolling her eyes as she talks with her hands. It's a cute look
compared to the death stare she gave me earlier.
“Right, okay,” I reply with a funny look, pulling out my phone. “So,
which one of your friends is it that want you to get my number so badly? I
bet it’s Scarlett. She used to date one of my teammates, you know.”
Her pink lips fight off a smile when she looks up at me.
“Oh, I know." She laughs softly as if there’s a hidden joke that I’m
missing. The airdrop notification sounds, showing that she’s received the
screenshot of my number. “I can assure you that it’s not. Thank you,
though.”
I watch her look at me for what feels like the first time. Like, really look
at me. The fluorescent lights make her eyes look completely green and her
red cheeks have still not died down.
I watch her take a sweep of my face; starting with my brown hair which
has grown longer than I’m used to, to the space between my eyes, and then
to my lips where she hovers for a beat too long. I lean back off the barrier,
putting some space between us as I clear my throat.
“Use it whenever you like. You’re a fun one to talk to, Wren,” I say,
turning around and walking back towards the hallway.
“What does that even mean?” she shouts, clearly frustrated. I laugh and
make my way out of the chilly rink. Honestly, I don’t even know what I
meant or why I said it. I just can’t seem to get her out of my head, and I
don’t want her to have any excuses not to talk to me.
*
After a painful week of not hearing from Wren, other than catching
small glimpses in the hallway, I go to my safe place. I’ve been good-ish this
week. I’ve cut down some of the heavy stuff like Bourbon but I’m still
balancing the lighter ones that can soothe the pain for a short period.
Since Carter’s death I’ve visited the rockery that the school put together
nearly every week. It’s located in the courtyard between the rinks at NU.
It’s a place where I can talk to him. The school offered me someone to talk
to but that doesn’t feel the same. I don’t want to find new ways to deal with
it and find a way to turn all my dark thoughts into something positive. I just
want to talk to him.
Even if he can’t talk back, just sitting here surrounded by all the things
that remind me of him make me feel closer to him.
Carter was practically my brother. Growing up, he spent a lot of time at
my place when he was in a tough place with his older brother while his
parents working. Ethan would use Carter as his punching bag instead of
working out his frustrations in a calm way. His parents never caught onto it,
but I did. Sometimes, he would stay with us for weeks at a time, basically
moving in when he didn’t want to be alone with his brother. It felt like an
extended summer camp. My parents didn’t mind and neither did Clara.
They all loved him. He was an easy person to love.
He was funny and smart in a casual way. Always too good for anybody.
Always rational but fun. He constantly had this light energy about him that
not only drew people towards him but made him light up any room he was
in.
We discovered our love for hockey early on. As kids, we would go to
the games with our parents who were huge hockey fans and when we got
older, we started to enjoy the game more. First it was the ice, then it was the
adrenaline rush, then it was the crowd and the support and then before we
knew it, it became our lives. We started off in little leagues, slowly getting
better and stronger until our high school won the championship. It was
always our dream to play for the Grizzlies in the NHL. If that didn’t work
out, which we were sure it would, we’d become coaches or personal
trainers. All we wanted was to play, side by side, and win the Stanley Cup.
Those dreams feel so out of reach now. This was supposed to be our
year. We were supposed to train harder than we had ever done, stick to a
strict diet and win the championship for NU. We were supposed to be
featured in the school newspaper. Miles Davis and Carter Reyes, it was
supposed to say, carrying North University to another victory. Instead, I’m
wasting away my days and nights with a bottle in my hand.
“I’m sorry, Carter. It’s been another bad week,” I say to him, adjusting
his large picture frame on the rockery. “I keep telling myself I’m going to
try but every time I get near our rink, I freeze up. It doesn’t feel right
without you. I know I need to try harder. I know I do. It’s just so difficult.
This was supposed to be our dream. Our year. Not just mine. I can’t even
put on my full gear without throwing up. I have managed to wear my jersey
again but the thought of picking up a stick makes my stomach turn.”
I laugh to myself, feeling pathetic. A car drives by and goosebumps rise
up my arms rapidly. Although it’s often noisy here on campus, talking to
him here is better than trying to do it at home. After he died, his parents
came to get some things out of his room but other than that it's been
untouched. It still feels like him. Still smells like him. Nobody goes near it,
and nobody mentions it. We’ve not held a party there since. His room is in
the basement and the thought of someone accidentally walking in there is
too frightening to risk.
“Enough of the sad shit. I met someone, sort of. She’s a piece of work
but, so am I. She tough and so fucking gorgeous. I’m positive that she hates
me but that onto makes me like her more. She’s funny without trying and I
can’t help but think that the world is trying to tell me something. The
second I get benched, there she is, like an angel or some shit. She’s been
everywhere and I can’t get her out of my head. I’m trying not to fuck it up,
but she’s had my number for a week, and she hasn’t said anything.”
Each time I talk to him, I keep thinking that he’s going to speak back.
That he’ll tell me in some way that he’s okay. To tell me that I need to get
my shit together. Or that one day, he’ll just jump out of the closet and say, “I
got you!” But it’s been three months and nothing. I ‘m just stupidly waiting
for him to come back.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 6
WREN
I don’t know what to do. I’ve been thinking over different approaches
to this for the past week and a half, but I’ve come up with nothing. It
doesn’t help that Scarlett is sitting an exam so I can’t ask for some rational
advice. Instead, I’m sitting in the on-campus café, Florentino’s, with
Kennedy who is on her break from working behind the counter. She is not
helping. At all.
“It’s not that hard, Wren,” Kennedy sighs, taking a sip of her iced
coffee. “Just tell him you want to hang out and then bring up the plan. Easy
peasy.”
“But then he’ll get excited and think I actually like him,” I groan.
“Why are you making this hard for yourself? What isn’t there to like?
He’s hot, you’re hot, you both… like ice.”
“He doesn’t take things seriously. The last two times I’ve had a
conversation with him, he reeked of alcohol. And not to mention he’s a
hockey player. I don't date hockey players. In fact, I don't date anymore,
period.”
“You’re a skater too. It’s practically the same thing.” Kennedy dismisses
with a wave of her hand. I throw her a rude look but instead her eyes widen.
“Did you hear about what happened with Millie Trainor and Ty on
NoCrumbs?”
NoCrumbs is a notorious gossip page based around colleges and
universities in Utah, primarily in Salt Lake. There’s a chain of them up and
down the country, most likely run by Mason Greer and his little minions.
NoCrumbsSLC posts almost daily updates on the latest scandals our
school and nearby schools have had. It’s a pathetic waste of time for people
who run it, but it gets everyone glued to their phones. I used to be one of
those people: refreshing the page to wait for an update, numbly scrolling
through the account to read what teacher said what about whoever. It’s easy
entertainment and a perfect icebreaker for any conversation with people in
the area.
“No, Ken, I haven’t.”
“You’re so chronically offline, I swear,” she huffs, pushing her brown
her over her shoulder. “She basically catfished him for months and when
she finally told him, he was fine with it. They’re still dating now, and it’s
even become an inside joke for their relationship.”
“I don’t see how that’s relevant to anything we’re talking about….”
“It is but it isn’t. Look, all I’m saying is you should give him a chance
to see how this could work. You know how insane everyone gets around
hockey players.”
“I want to preform again, that’s it. I don’t want anything more than that.
I can’t have anything more,” I relay. She gives an understanding smile in
return, not knowing whether to push it or not.
“A bit of romance wouldn’t hurt, y’know? Even if it’s fake. You need to
loosen up a little,” she presses softly. I try and let the idea go down for a
second, but it doesn’t sit right.
“I don’t know anything about him,” I protest when it's the first thing to
come to mind.
“Like what?”
“Like, where does he stand on basic human rights issues? Does he care
about climate change? That sort of thing.”
“Wren, do you even care about climate change?” Kennedy challenges.
“I do,” I say slowly, pushing my plastic coffee cup away from me. She
watches the movement, and she shakes her head disbelievingly.
“Well, you’re about to find out,” she singsongs when something behind
me catches her eye.
“What?”
“Mm-” she starts but she doesn’t need to finish before I see him.
With lethal timing, just as we’re talking about him, Miles is here,
looking devastating. To his credit, he is looking for a lot less dishevelled
than he has the last few times I’ve seen him. Maybe he's even showered.
He’s dressed plainly in dark jeans and a white top, his curly brown hair
falling down his neck. Fuck. Why can’t I tear my eyes away from him? I
need to keep myself in check.
“Hey, Wren,” he says with a wicked grin.
“To what do I owe this pleasure?” I ask, bored.
Kennedy shoots me a disappointed look as if I’m a naughty
kindergartener. He plucks a seat from an empty table nearby and takes a
seat to my right, his long legs coming dangerously close to mine. He looks
so out of place. Not only are we at a table for two, but his tallness and
roughness doesn’t seem to fit into this dainty café.
“Are you not going to introduce me to your friend?” he asks, gesturing
to Kennedy. She gives a sheepish smile, practically blushing.
“I hardly know you. There’s no point introducing you to someone you’ll
hopefully not see again,” I say. I don’t know why that whenever I’m around
him I feel the need to be more bratty than usual. I kind of like the way he
challenges me.
“Oh, but you’re dying to get to know me, right?” Miles whines, leaning
towards me. God, why does the noise make my stomach swarm with
butterflies? Hearing a man groan is one thing but hearing them whine or
plead is another. Unfortunately, my weakness.
“Must have slipped my mind,” I say with ease. Kennedy is
unimpressed, practically pouting like a child as she crosses her arms across
her chest.
“Why do you have to make this so hard, Wrenny?” Kennedy sighs.
Before I can retort to her use of my worst nickname, Miles jumps in.
“Yeah. Why do you have to make this so hard, Wrenny?” he repeats in a
mocking tone. He turns to Kennedy. “God, I love that nickname. Thank
you– Sorry what’s your name, again?”
Kennedy’s face lights up as she extends her hand dramatically.
“Kennedy Wynter. Like the season but with a 'Y.' Nice to officially meet
you.” Miles takes her hand and shakes it before turning to me.
“Officially, huh? You talking about me already, Wren?” Miles asks
cheerfully. I roll my eyes and when he catches it, he smirks.
“You’re infuriating,” I say, holding my hands up to him and then closing
them into fists with a sigh, dropping them on the table.
We stare at each other, talking with our eyes. His face puzzled but
amused, searching my face for something as the crease between his
eyebrow deepens. What are you doing? I’m trying to say. I don’t know, he
would say, But you're staring at me. You looked at me first, I’d retort until
we’re in an intense staring contest. He opens his mouth to speak but nothing
comes out and he clamps it shut.
“I’m sensing some tension here. I’ll see you later, Wren. I need to get
back before I get fired,” Kennedy says, sliding out of her seat and picking
up her coffee. She comes over to my side of the small table and whispers
‘Play nice’ before flashing a smile to Miles and leaves.
“I’m always nice,” I mutter as Miles takes over Kennedy’s seat,
crossing his arms on his chest, spreading his legs out further so he’s
manspreading. If I didn’t find him so agitating, I would find what he’s
doing right now to be incredibly attractive. I fiddle with my straw of my
nearly empty coffee cup.
“Soo,” I drag out, not sure what to say now we’re alone. The side of his
mouth twitches but he doesn’t let it turn into a full smile. It was easy to talk
at the party because I could run to Scarlett and Ken and I could skate away
at the rink but here, it’s like we have to speak. I say the dumbest thing that
can come to mind. “What’cha doing here?”
“Just doing what everyone else is doing; getting coffee."
“Oh, so your first non-alcoholic drink of the day?” I say, keeping my
tone light. He laughs quietly and for some reason I want him to do it again.
“What?! Coffee doesn’t have alcohol? My day has been ruined!” Miles
exclaims melodramatically. I like that he’s quick. He’s able to keep up with
my sarcasm which isn’t something that I get a lot. Always keeping me on
my toes. I hate that it also makes me smile like an idiot.
What is he doing? What’s his game plan? Why now? We’ve never really
spoken before this point. Sure, we passed in the hallways between the rinks
and in the gym a few times but never anything more than a glance. When I
saw him at the party, coughing his lungs up over the sink, this was not how
I saw it going. I thought I would save this huge guy from dying and
continue begging Kennedy and Scarlett to take me home.
“Is it bad that I enjoy talking to you more than most of my friends?
You’re, like, hella brutal, but that somehow makes me enjoy it more,” he
admits, grinning hard as if this is the most fun, he’s had in a long time. His
rashness catches me off guard.
“I think you’re hyper fixating on me to avoid fixing your problems,” I
respond truthfully. Because that’s what this is right? He’s going through a
tough time, and I just happened to be in the right place at the right time.
And now, whenever we’re around each other we feel the need to talk. It’s
natural. And honestly, I think I’m doing it too.
He shrugs, looking out of the window. “I guess so.”
His voice sounds so far away. He’s quiet for a while, staring out of the
window at the autumn trees in the courtyard, deep in thought. Just out of
reach. For a minute I think I’ve upset him or said the wrong thing in the
wrong way. Great. This is not awkward at all. It isn’t long before he speaks
again.
“Why haven’t you texted me yet?” he asks, peeling his gaze from the
window to my face. The way his mind changes and subject shifts almost
gives me whiplash.
“What?”
“It’s been, like, two weeks and…nothing. Were you being serious when
you said you hate hockey guys?” he asks, his voice suddenly boyish and
pained.
“Yes, and no?” He raises his eyebrow, moving his head to the side
slightly. “I just don’t enjoy the hockey culture, I guess. Especially at NU.
The parties, the drinking, the social media, the rituals, and the stupidity that
is 'puck bunnies.' Us skaters stay away from you guys. It's an unspoken rule.
I’ve been trying my best to follow that, but here you are.”
“I’m just irresistible, Wren. You're going to have to get used to it,” he
says lazily.
“You’re more like a leech but sure,” I shrug.
“Well, if it makes you feel any better, I haven’t slept with anyone in
over four months.,” he challenges. "I've never referred to a girl I've hooked
up with as a Puck Bunny, and I never will."
“It doesn’t make me feel any better. It just means you can keep it in
your pants longer than the average Joe. Congratulations,” I sigh. “That’s
beside the point. All of my friends’ experiences with hockey guys have not
ended well. The last thing I want is to be on someone like Jake Callahan’s
roster.”
Miles laughs, a toothy grin spreading across his face. “Fine, I can admit
that Jake is a dick but not everyone is like that. You can’t just put us all into
the same box. What’s the word?”
He taps at the table with his forefinger. I can’t help but notice how clean
his hands are. They’re huge yet they look so delicate. If I wasn’t so focused
on not liking him, I would say he’s getting more brownie points just for
letting my fantasise about his hands on me for a split second. The way they
would look around my- No. No. What the fuck is wrong with me?
“Stereotype,” I say under my breath when I remember to speak. He
grins as if I’ve helped him solve one of the worlds hardest problems.
“Yeah. You can’t stereotype us. I’m not saying I’m perfect but I’m a
decent guy. Xavier, Harry, and Grey are too. And Carter…he was way too
good for anybody.”
I see the way his eyes dim at the mention of his best friend. I didn’t
know Carter that well, the same way I didn’t know most of the hockey
guys, but he was always one the ones I could tolerate. When Scarlett was
dating Jake, Carter was usually with them, and she would always say how
funny he was. Everyone says that he had this light energy about him;
everyone was so drawn to him. He wasn’t like one of those douchey guys
that everyone idolises when they pass on. Carter was always kind. Everyone
knew that before and after.
“Anyway, I’m rambling. All I’m saying is you need to give people a
chance. Not everyone is out to get you. Xavier warned me about you and
look, here I am,” Miles says, gesturing to himself, grinning.
I lean forward, looking into his green eyes, trying to figure him out.
“Warned you how?”
“Oh, nothing. He just said you were pretty hard core,” he says, taking a
piece of the scone that I forgot was there. He shoves a chunk into his mouth
without asking and I’m too in my head to tell him not to.
Hard core.
Nobody has ever called me that before. I know I’m a little tough
because I have to be. I can’t skate without being tough on myself and
setting myself limits. But, hard core feels like something more. Something
just tangible. I nod my head, turning over his words. I want to give him a
chance. I want to preform, and he needs to stop moping and get back to
playing. I can’t deal with another pitiful look at school from everyone who
saw my last performance and the countless NoCrumbs reposts.
“Can I ask you something? You can totally say no but again, Scarlett
and Kennedy would murder me if I don’t ask,” I say bravely. Taking back
my scone which, he somehow has nearly eaten half of.
“Yeah, sure. But first, can I ask what your deal is with them? No offence
but I’ve only seen you hang out with them,” he says.
“You keeping tabs on me?” I smirk. He shrugs, not giving me an
answer. “They’re basically my sisters. I wouldn’t be talking to you right
now if it wasn’t for them.”
“I don’t know if that’s a compliment or not,” he says, wearily, a
sceptical look overtaking his face. I shrug in response too. “What did you
want to ask?”
I’ve started it now. I have to follow through. I take a deep breath,
closing my eyes quickly before opening them again.
“You kind of brought up at the party but I thought it was stupid. You
were suggesting a way we can help each other out in a mutually beneficial
way. Some way I can help you get back on track with training and you can
help me boost my image again and let people fall back in love figure
skating,” I explain, not fully meeting his eyes, suddenly finding the table
more interesting.
“No offence, but how could you help me train? You’re like five-three,”
he says, almost laughing.
“It’s a lot harder than hitting a puck on ice all day,” I mutter. He nudges
me softly under the table. I take in a breath, not letting him get to me. “I go
to the gym five, sometimes six, days a week. I’m on a strict food plan, I
take Pilates classes when I can and I’m on the ice more than I’m in my bed.
I don’t have the time or the energy to mess up my plan, but I can make
adjustments.”
He stares at me, impressed and shocked. “Jesus, I do one of those things
maybe twice a week. I used to be a lot better but since Carter… I just
haven’t.”
For some strange reason I want to hold his hand, and squeeze it
reassuringly, to tell him it’s okay to lose motivation but I tell myself not to.
We're not there yet. I know how hard it is to get back on track after losing
someone. I saw how hard it was for Kennedy after losing her dad when she
was a kid.
“I know and that’s why I want to help. I can’t stand you a lot of the
time, but I feel for you, and this might actually work,” I say, finally
admitting it to myself.
“I think so too. How could I help you, though?”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 7
MILES
My heart swells. She read my mind. My fingers fly over the screen. At
least she’s finally using my number. I change her contact and text her back.
Me: Yeah, sure. You can come over to my place. Does Friday
work?
Wren: That’s perfect. See u then.
I can’t ignore the way her texting style makes my stomach flutter. Fuck.
Since when did I start to get butterflies over a girl? That’s new for me but
I’m not surprised. In the short time that we’ve known each other, I’ve felt
more and more out of control of my body.
My mind seems to wander when her mouth moves, especially when
she’s saying something sarcastic. She doesn’t just let me get what I want
because she must be able to tell that I want her. I want her in any way I can
have her. She’s like a magnet.
A destructive thought is telling me that what Wren said earlier was true.
Maybe I am hyper fixating on her to avoid my problems. I’m supposed to
be stronger than this. I’m almost twenty and I can’t even deal with the death
of my best friend in a healthy way. There will be worse days than the day I
lost him, so I need to get over this feeling in my chest. I need to get to the
other side.
*
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 8
WREN
Since my parents' divorce, five years ago, Melanie Hackerly has been
on the quest to establish herself as a woman that can never be shaken. The
woman that can conquer all. She wanted to be the type of person people
write articles about, the type of woman that could have hundreds of girls
lining up to play her in a biopic. That was her plan for so long that when she
was injured and went into teacher training, she’s still found some loophole
to get her to whatever stage she needs to be on in five years.
As kids, Austin, and I, never really saw anything wrong with my
parents’ relationship. They seemed happy. Whole. We had weekly family
outings; birthdays were always a blast and we had regular vacations. There
was nothing that we could see to tell us they weren’t in love.
Their love was nothing idolise and aspire to; it just was. They kissed
and said goodbye on their way to work, they always tucked us in until we
reached our teens until one day they just fell out of love. It was quick and
simple. There were no arguments or name-calling, they just stopped. My
dad told me it wasn’t our fault - because it never is - and they went their
separate ways.
Soon after, my mom remarried to another recent divorcee, Mike, who
has two kids from his last marriage. My mom moved out of our family
home into a Spanish-style house just out Salt Lake in Centreville. My dad
still lives in our family home, our childhood bedrooms still covered with the
same One Direction posters I’ve had for as long as I could remember.
I know I’m not supposed to take sides in the divorce but if anyone were
to ask, I’d say I’m on my dad side. No doubt. It’s not like my mom has done
anything wrong particularly. She hasn’t deceived us in anyway, but it felt
like for a lot of my life, she wasn’t a mom to me. She was always my coach
before ever being a mom.
My dad was the only one who let me be a kid. He let me read instead of
working out. He let me eat ice cream after dinner, get dirty at the park and
he let me wear my pyjama’s all day when mom wasn’t there. He didn’t
parade me around like a show pony, he just let me be. That’s all I ever
wanted from her.
When they split, Austin was nineteen, so she wasn’t living at home
anymore while she was at NU. My parents had shared custody of me, so I
alternated between staying with mom and staying at dads. I always called
dads house ‘home.’ It’s where I felt most comfortable. When I was with
mom, it just felt like I was third wheeling. Mike’s kids were living on their
own since they were older than Austin and me. So, every time I was there,
they were all over each other. It felt like I was constantly interrupting their
extended honeymoon. Like I was an unnecessary flea floating around them.
Like I was watching her new life unfold without me in it. Luckily, as soon
as I got into NU, I was able to move in with Kennedy and Scarlett. Still,
pulling into her driveway now, their house feels foreign.
*
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 9
MILES
“You guys need to get out so I can sterile the environment before she
comes over,” I shout for what feels like the hundredth time.
I knew it was a mistake letting the guys come over tonight. Usually,
Friday nights are chill here with me, Xavier, and Evan. But for some reason,
Xavier decided to invite Harry and Greyson over too. They’ve been playing
on the PlayStation for the last three hours, none of them ready to tear away
from the screen just yet. I clean around them as they make more mess every
time I pick something back up.
“So, are you going to tell us who this mystery girl is?” Grey asks
through a mouthful of mini pretzels as I pick up an empty chip packet from
next to him.
“You’ll know soon enough,” I say, moving into the kitchen. They
continue shouting over the game and at each other. If I wasn’t so stressed
out, I would join them. There is nothing I love more than playing a heated
game of FIFA.
“It’s Wren Hackerly,” Xavier explains loudly. I shoot him a look
through the open kitchen. He shrugs.
I haven’t told Xavier about the plan yet because I feel like that’s
something Wren and I need to talk about first. But it seems like her friends
already know so what would be the harm? I know I’m not telling any of the
other guys. That’s for sure.
“Wait, Ms Hacks’ daughter?” Harry asks in his thick Australian accent
which I still haven’t gotten used to.
He’s a year younger than us but he’s a ridiculously good player and
strangely smart so he was able to get into NU early. It’s kind of weird
having him on our team but all the girls love him, so we have to put up with
his obnoxiousness. I walk back into the living room, inspecting the area
before nodding.
“How does everyone know who she is? I feel like I’ve only really seen
her recently,” I say, trying to make sense of it.
“Because you’ve been nose deep in bourbon for the past four months,”
Grey laughs, not looking from the screen. I don’t disagree.
After our talk at the café, I haven’t had a proper drink since. I’ve had a
few beers throughout the week but nothing heavier than that. The only thing
keeping me going is knowing that I’m going to see her later and the idea
that I’ll get back in the rink soon.
“I don’t blame you though, she’s hot as fuck. Well, before she got
dropped. Since then, she’s been acting like she has a cork up her ass,” Harry
laughs, and my chest tightens. I don’t know why I feel so protective over
her, but I do, and we aren’t even fake dating yet.
“Chill. Don’t talk about her like that,” I bite out, my voice rough. He
turns to me and shrugs.
“Sorry, mate,” he apologises.
I sit across from them and pull out my phone. I need to speak to her
before I lose my mind. I pull up our text chat and fire off my first message.
Wren: Fuck.
Wren: I'm so sorry. Omw now.
Ten minutes of more panicking later, I’m opening the door to a sweaty
and puffy faced Wren.
She’s wearing cycling shorts that are way too short and a sports bra, a
duffle bag in her hand. Her blond hair is tied back in a messy ponytail and
the flyaways stick to her forehead. She looks gorgeous. My smile widens as
she walks in, shooting out apologies and waving her hands around
frantically.
I stop in front of her, placing my hands on her shoulder and she properly
looks at me. Her breathing is still heavy, and it takes her a while to focus on
my eyes. She searches my face, not sure where to look but when she moves
to my eyes and then to my mouth, she parts her lips.
“I’m so sorry I’m late. I was at the gym, and I lost track of time. And,
God, I smell like ass,” she rambles, everything merging together into one
word. She scrunches her nose at herself, shaking her head. I can’t help but
laugh.
“It's okay. Just take a deep breath," I instruct and she does. "Are you
okay, though? You seem a little…” I add, giving her another once over.
“Tense? On edge?” I nod sympathetically. “Yeah, my mom has been
breathing down my neck all week and I can’t think straight.”
She must have only noticed my hands on her shoulders because she
looks at them and then looks at me. I take her in for a few more beats. She
gives a sheepish smile and I drop my hands, clearing my throat.
“Do you want to do this another time? We don’t have to right now,” I
suggest, letting her follow me into the kitchen. I try and not dwell on the
idea that this is the first time she’s been inside of my house and how normal
this feels. All the panic and fear that was in my veins earlier has slowly
subsided.
“No!” she bursts out dramatically. I raise my eyebrows at her before
pouring her a glass of water and hand it to her. She downs it in two gulps
and slams it on the countertop. She wipes the back of her hand across her
mouth and sighs deeply. It’s like she’s begging me to fall in love with her.
“Sorry, that was gross. Can I, um, use your shower?”
“It wasn’t gross but yes, you can use my shower.” I grin. “Do you want
a quick tour first?”
She nods her head enthusiastically, blowing her hair out of her face. I
take her around the kitchen and the living room to the dining area. I avoid
Carter’s room and bring her into the den, which I’m lucky I cleaned when I
was stressing if she was going to show up at all. I bring her up the stairs and
give her a peak into everyone’s bedroom. She laughs at how starkly
different Xavier’s rooms is to Evans. Finally, I bring her to my room.
She audibly gasps as she enters. My room is one of the biggest in the
house because I was lucky enough to get first dibs. Each wall is painted
dark grey, filled top to bottom with movie and hockey posters. My dresser
is stacked with books and sports magazines that I’ve hoarded over the
years. I was smart enough to empty out most of my mini fridge and fill it
with age-appropriate drinks.
“Did you clean this just for me?” she whines sarcastically as she walks
over to my pile of books. She looks at them for a minute, running her hand
across the hardbacks before turning around, leaning against them.
“This is actually the only room I didn’t clean. Everyone knows that a
clean room means a clear mind,” I admit truthfully as I stalk closer towards
her. Her breath hitches as I tower over her, her green eyes staring into me.
“Hmm,” she murmurs, something getting caught in her throat. It dawns
on me that this is the first time we’ve been alone in private, and it turns my
thoughts irrational. Impulsive. I brush the hair out of her face, my hand
barley contacting her forehead, but she tenses.
“Are you surprised?” I ask, my voice coming out hoarse and scratchy.
She backs up a little, making the dresser shake as she braces her hands at
both sides of her.
“Actually, yes."
Quickly, she moves from in front of me and slides behind me, so I’m
left to stare at the empty space she left. I turn to see her ruffling through her
duffle bag, her ass facing me. “Fuck me,” she groans. Believe me, I want to.
I clear my throat. “What is it?”
She turns to face me, her face scrunched up. “I left my clothes in my
locker. You’re just going to have to put up with me smelling like sweat.”
“You don’t smell,” I say quietly. She raises her eyebrows, unimpressed.
“You can just wear something of mine.”
“Are you sure? I don’t want to, like, invade your personal space and
stuff,” she mumbles, looking through her bag again before dropping it. I’m
already looking through my drawers before I reply.
“Yes, Wren, it’s fine. You can invade my personal space whenever you
want as long as you let me invade yours.”
She snorts from behind me. "That doesn't seem like a very fair tade,"
she mumbles.
I return to her with a towel, a white faded tee shirt and some shorts. She
picks them up and gives me a smile. I point to the door in the corner of my
room. “The bathroom is through there.”
She nods and makes her way to the door. I sit down on my bed with a
thump, dropping on my back at all the sexual frustration in my body. I drag
my hands down my face, sighing.
“I don’t usually do this…” she says softly. I sit up to see her with her
hand on the handle but her body facing me.
“What? Shower at your fake boyfriend’s house?”
“Yes, but I mean I’m usually more put together than this,” she laughs,
practically grimacing at herself.
“It’s okay, Wren. You’re making me feel better about my own chaotic-
ness.”
She smiles and slips into the shower.
*
Letting Wren shower here was a bad idea. It was an even worse idea
letting her borrow my clothes because she looks so fucking hot right now.
She had a clean pair of her own shorts in her bag so she slipped them on
along with my shirt which clings to her body in some places which haven’t
dried properly, and I can see through it. Right through it. She walked out
with her arms across her chest, the shirt falling halfway down her thighs and
told me not to laugh. I couldn’t laugh even if I wanted to with how hard I
am. When she sat on the bed next to me and I was smart enough to put a
cushion on my lap.
“No one can know that this is fake other than your closest friends,”
Wren concedes, writing down a rule in her notebook.
“Agreed. I only trust Xavier to keep quiet about it,” I reply. “I’m
assuming both Kennedy and Scarlett already know.”
“Yep,” she beams, popping the ‘p.’
We agreed that we’ll do the whole fake dating thing until her showcase
at the end of December which gives us just under two months. If it doesn’t
work out, we’ll re-evaluate to prepare for my first game. My first real game
for the season isn’t until January so I have plenty of time to convince Coach
to let me back on the team.
“Next thing is family. Do you want to meet each other's parents, or
should that be ruled out?”
I feel my body stiffen and I shrug, not sure what to say. “Why don’t we
come to that when the time comes?”
“Okay, but my mom has asked me a million questions since I
accidentally told her. And my dad is going to be very interested. That's just
how he is. Are you okay with that?” Wren asks wearily, watching for my
reaction.
“That’s fine. The last time we spoke she was close to kicking me out so
I’m sure she’s going to love that I’m dating her daughter,” I say
sarcastically, pulling her notebook into my lap, adding something next to
her second rule. She throws a cushion at me, not finding my joke funny.
“Moving on,” she mumbles softly. “We should go out two times a week
and have one sleepover, just to show that it’s more serious than casual sex.
You can come to mine, and I’ll come here some weeks. We don’t have to
stay in the same bed, obviously. If we go to parties, we need to attend and
leave together to give no one any reason to speculate that something is off.”
“Yeah, that’s a good one,” I reply, not knowing what else to do.
She’s been taking the handle on this part of the plan, I’ve just been
agreeing to everything, trying not to look at her breasts. It’s even worse that
she asked for the air con to be put on because I can see how hard they are
under the chill.
“What about PDA?” I say, thinking with my dick. She continues typing
in her phone, not looking at me. I pull my focus from her legs to her face.
“What about it?”
“Is it going to be a problem?” I ask. She doesn’t make a noise or move
as if she’s even heard me as she continues writing. “Okay, so I’m just going
to assume that making out, hand holding, ass grabbing and anything up to
second base is on the table.”
That gets her attention. Her head shoots up, her cheeks dark red. I can’t
help but smirk to myself.
“Only if absolutely necessary,” she breathes, pulling down the shirt
further over her thighs. "And we shouldn't show any displays of affection
when we're alone."
I ignore her last addition as she writes it down. “Shouldn’t we kiss once
before so we know what we’re doing?” I ask.
I rest my hand on her bare knee tenderly and I feel her tense beneath
me. She closes her eyes and opens them again before placing her hand on
mine. She lets out a noise between a groan and a laugh as she takes my
hand off her knee.
“Have you ever kissed a girl before?” she asks, mockingly, titling her
head to me.
I nod. Adding, "Multiple," with a grin.
She grimaces. “Then we should be fine.”
I lay down, throwing my forearms across my face. Well, that plan didn’t
work out. Which, I’m partly glad for because I don’t think I would be able
to stop if her lips came anywhere near mine. I hear her shuffle on the bed, I
open my eyes slightly and she’s sitting next to my head.
Her legs are crossed beside me so I can see the slither of her black
shorts. I take a deep breath and close my eyes again, praying my dick isn’t
as hard as it feels. She continues talking over the plans as I drift in and out
of consciousness, mm hmm-ing and nodding in response. I feel her soft hand
on my forehead, stroking gingerly, and my eyes shoot open at the gentle
contact.
“Sorry. I, uh, I thought you were sleeping,” she whispers. She bites her
bottom lip as I shake my head softly. “Okay, my last and most important
rule.”
I lean up on my elbows, looking at her under tired eyes. I could get used
to this: opening my eyes and seeing her there in my shirt, looking down at
me with whatever serious expressions she has now.
“Shoot.”
She waits a second, almost afraid to say it. As if speaking her next
words have been the only thing holding her back.
“Rule number six: If things get too real for either one of us, we have to
tell each other,” she explains finally. "I mean real feelings other than
attraction. It could mess up the plan."
“Worried you’ll fall in love with me, Wren?” I tease. A wicked grin
spreads across my face when her cheeks heat up.
“It’s you that I’m worried about,” she says back without missing a beat.
I grumble and she laughs, pushing my head gently so my elbows buckle,
and my head hits the pillow.
I hate how right she is. One sultry look from her and I would completely
devour her. If she wasn’t so committed to keeping our friendship purely a
friendship, I would have grabbed her waist and pulled her into me by now
and let her straddle me. I shake my head to get out all of the fantasies.
“And what about your side of the deal?” I ask, after staring at her for
too long, finding my ceiling more interesting.
“You’ll come to the gym with me whenever you have time. Then we’ll
figure out a good food plan and I’ll do some of my own research on hockey
training in the meantime,” she says.
“Sounds good. It’s Sophia Aoki's birthday party next weekend so we
could go to that as our first public outing,” I suggest but as soon as I said
the word ‘party,’ she groaned. “What? Don’t tell me that you hate parties.”
“I hate the feeling of being drunk and I hate being around strangers who
are,” she admits with a shudder.
“Well, if you want this to work, we’re going to have to go to a few
parties,” I challenge.
“Is that all you do, Miles?” she asks, leaning into me from above. I
swallow. Hard.
“When I don’t have any important games coming up, yes,” I admit.
“Why?” she questions, genuinely curious.
“Because… it’s fun. You should try it sometime if you even know what
fun is."
"Oh, I know what fun is," she bites back.
"Oh, really? What do you do in your spare time?”
“Skate. And when I’m not doing that, sleeping,” she says, her voice
suddenly sounding miles away.
I don’t know when we got so close and when she started to touch my
hair again but we both haven’t made a fuss. She’s had this stress in her face
since she got here but it’s finally seemed to smooth out. It seems like she
needs this more than me. Her soft hands graze my forehead and then push
into my hair. What the hell do you use in your hair? I hear her mumble,
almost angrily.
“That doesn’t sound very fun,” I say quietly when I remember we were
just talking.
“It isn’t,” she says ruefully. We sit like this for a minute or two before
she moves her hand. “I should go home. It’s getting late.”
“Okay,” I get out quickly before I ask her to stay. She picks up her
duffle bag, but she doesn’t move. She just stands, chewing on her bottom
lip, looking at me. “I hope you feeling better, soon.”
“What?” she says after a while, as if I caught her in a trance.
“You said your mom was breathing down your neck. That you were
stressed. I just think you should take a break or something.”
She shakes her head with a laugh. “There’s no rest for the wicked,” she
says, her smile twitching. “This helped, though. Thank you, Miles.”
“Anytime.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 10
WREN
I’ve been trying to justify what happened with me and Miles for the last
few days. Or more of what didn’t happen. Who was I to sit there and stroke
his hair like his fucking real girlfriend? It was dangerous. Lethal. I had a
shit week, skating until my hands and feet were numb and there he was with
a warm shower and a shirt that felt too comfortable against my skin. I knew
what I was doing when I walked out the shower, basically naked, but I
couldn’t stop. A huge part of me didn’t want to. I didn’t leave my clothes on
purpose. I was too busy trying to get to his house after I almost broke the
treadmill from cranking it up every few seconds. Luckily, I left before I did
something I’d regret.
I went back two days ago to help him with his meal plan which was too
easy. He was willing to throw out all the junk he had for healthy
alternatives. I tried to give him his shirt back, but he refused it. “I don’t
want it back,” he said. “It looks better on you anyway.”
I need to figure out a way to control myself before this tension turns
into more before we’ve even publicly announced our relationship.
I’m now running around the house, trying to find my good sports bra to
wear to the gym with Miles. I burned through more workout clothes this
week than I usually do in a month, and I haven’t been on top of the laundry.
The only one I have now is a black Nike one which I haven’t worn since
high school. And not to my benefit now, my boobs have grown a ton since
then.
“Did you shave?” Scarlett asks through of a mouthful of toast when I
get to the kitchen. She’s sat at the island, eating her breakfast while
balancing a study video on the back of her cup. She’s been pestering me
with these kinds of questions all morning.
“No, Scarlett, I didn’t. We’re going to the gym, I’m not trying to fuck
him,” I counter but she shrugs. Under very different circumstances I would
have. Hell, if I was unstable enough last week, I definitely would have. I
know it goes against everything I’ve tried to avoid but there is something so
undeniably attractive about him. Something that with one look, I could be
completely destroyed. Hockey player and all.
“Can’t you do both?” Kennedy asks, walking in the kitchen as she rubs
sleep out of her eyes. "He might just trip and fall right between your legs."
“Do you guys both have to be on my case right now?” I sigh frustrated.
They both giggle and there’s rapid knocking on the door. They exchange
glances and pull a stupid face as I run to answer it.
It’s Miles. He’s in grey shorts and a white tee, a duffle bag slung across
his shoulder. He looks devastating. He steps into the apartment and raises a
hand to Kennedy and Scarlett who are so obviously ogling. I am too.
“You look hot,” he says quickly, gesturing to my tiny sports bra and
joggers. I suck in a breath at his forwardness. Swatting him on his shoulder,
I try to battle the blush on my cheeks.
“You don’t have to pretend to like me. They already know that we’re
pretending,” I say, walking away from him to collect my bag from the
couch.
“I know,” he whispers. I turn to see him smirking. Scarlett gets out of
her seat, standing in front of him. I don’t have to see her face that she’s
either smiling or judging him. They’re almost the same height, Miles only a
few inches taller.
“Miles. Nice to finally meet you. Again,” Scarlett says, her voice
humours and light. He shakes her outstretched hand. I walk up towards
them, standing at her side.
“Ooh, don’t say ‘finally.’ He’ll think that I talk about him all the time,”
I warn, rolling my eyes. Miles' mouth opens then closes, shaking his head. I
smile to myself.
“But you do talk about him all the time,” Kennedy shouts from
whatever corner she’s disappeared to. I catch Miles’ eyes over Scarlett’s
head. He raises his eyebrows, but I ignore it.
“You ready to go?” I ask. He nods, exchanges goodbyes with my friends
and we head out of the door and catch the elevator down to the bottom
floor. He walks past my car in the parking lot and continues walking down
towards the main road. “Where are you going?”
He turns around dumbfounded. “To the gym. Why are you taking your
car? It’s, like, five minutes away.” He sighs, throwing his hands up and then
dropping them.
“Oh, you sweet, innocent, child. Get in,” I demand, and he obliges. He
looks so out of place in my car. His larger-than-life shoulders barley fit in
the seat, and he has to adjust his chair to give his legs more room. It’s
comical, really. We barely make it out of the drive before he starts asking
me a million questions.
“Where are we going? There’s not another gym for miles. Are you
going to murder me? Is this a kidnapping? Why aren’t you answering my
questions?” he asks rapidly.
“If I wanted to kidnap you, why would I ask you to come to my
apartment?”
“You’re right but that still doesn’t make me feel any better.”
“Can you chill? I said we were going to do real training. If there is one
perk to my dad owning hotels, it’s that I get access to all the private gyms.”
He looks at me and laughs. “You’re insane.”
“That is the second time you’ve called me that. I’m just being practical.
Why would we waste our time in a gym where the equipment is mediocre,
at best, when we could go to a luxury one that has just been built.”
He doesn’t ask any more questions while I drive. He does change the
music every two minutes, never letting a full song play. In the last ten
minutes I’ve heard, Taylor Swift, Lana Del Rey, Lil Nas X and Miley
Cyrus. I was beginning to think that he’s not that bad. That he’s not the
douche hockey guy I made him out to be. Until he started singing. I almost
crashed four times in the thirty-minute drive at his screeching.
“Remind me to never carpool with you again,” I say when we walk into
the hotel.
“I’ve got a gorgeous voice, Wren,” he whispers in my ear at the
reception desk. His breath tickles my neck and I shiver. I ignore him and get
our day passes and we walk through the transparent doors into the gym.
Secluded gyms like these, that nobody knows about just yet, are my
favourite. They always smell fresh and I’m usually one of the first people to
use the equipment. It’s like opening the cap of a fresh orange juice bottle.
It’s so satisfying and calming.
We place our bags in the corner of the room and we start a light warm
up. It was easy settling into a routine with him. The girls took forever to get
into going to the gym with me. After a few painful months for them, they
saw it more as an annual thing to come along with me. Apparently, I’m too
intense for them. Miles and I quickly get into a smooth rhythm of doing a
few miles on the treadmill and the Step Master. We then move to the
weights.
“How much can you bench?” I ask when we take a small break. I pull
out the lid off my water bottle with my teeth and gulp some while he just
stares, catching his breath.
“Isn’t that the same as asking a girl what their bra size is?” he asks back.
I can’t help but laugh.
“That’s not the same thing. You don’t have to tell me. I was just
wondering,” I say, getting ready to go on the bench press myself. He stands
behind me as I slide in, getting ready to spot me.
“I don’t know. Maybe, one-seventy,” he concedes, suddenly looking
embarrassed. I let out a huh in recognition. “What about you?”
“Uh, one-ninety. On a good day,” I say, my cheeks turning red. I don’t
know why I asked, and I don’t know why I told him.
“How the fuck can you do that? You’re, like, the size of a child. You
really are hard core,” he sighs. I ignore his child comment and let out a
disbelieving chuckle.
“Not really. I’ve been training since I could walk pretty much. I did a lot
of gymnastics growing up, to improve my arm and leg strength,” I admit.
The silence stretches between us as we become a mess of heavy
breathing and grunting. After alternating on the bench press, we move back
to the floor space, changing between weighted squats and sit ups. It brings a
strange sense of comfort being her with him. I usually try to work out on
my own in these private gyms but knowing someone here is a lot nicer than
I thought.
“You’re doing it wrong,” I groan at Miles for what feels like the
thousandth time. I'm a picky eater and I'm a picky person. Watching
someone continuously do something wrong is one of my pet peeves.
“I think I know how to do a squat, Wren,” he retorts, still standing
weirdly in front of the mirror. I go towards him, standing in front of him so
he can see me in the mirror.
“Watch what I’m doing,” I say, meeting his eye in the mirror. He just
blinks at me as I spread my legs to decent position, make sure my back is
correct and I squat down low. I didn’t think about the proximity until I feel
my ass brush against his shorts. I watch him inhale before letting out a
shaky breath. I grab his hands from behind me.
“What are you doing?” he asks, his voice hoarse.
“You don’t seem like a very visual learner,” I murmur as I place one of
his giant hands onto my lower back and the other on my stomach. “Can you
feel how my back isn’t leaning too forward?”
He doesn’t say anything. He makes a noise in the back of his throat and
nods at me in the mirror. “Just feel that when I go down, okay?” He nods
again. Slowly, I lower myself down to the squat position, holding it for a
few seconds before coming back up. “See?”
I repeat the motion again before moving away from him. I watch him do
it himself until he’s got the hang of it.
We mostly work another round in silence until were both on the floor.
Miles slides his phone to me before laying down in front of me. I hold onto
his feet while he does his first round of sit ups.
“I found some…questions…on BuzzFeed...that we should… know the
answers to if we’re going to be a fake couple,” he breathes. I laugh at his
persistence to work out and talk at the same time. I open his phone.
“You should put a password on here, you know?” I say.
“I’ve got nothing to hide,” he challenges. Fair enough. “They’re in my
Notes.”
I scroll through his phone and open the Notes app. I skim through the
questions, not sure what I was expecting. They are all relationship based or
weird icebreakers to get to know each other. He sits up from his position
because I can no longer hold his feet. We sit facing each other, cross legged,
looking sweaty and dishevelled.
“Okay,” I draw out. “This will be fun. First question. What was the first
thing you thought about me when we met?”
Miles runs a hand through this hair. “Honestly, all I could think about
was how hot you are.”
“Miles, be serious,” I say, poking him with my foot.
“I am!” he replies. I poke him again. “Fine, when we met at the party, I
just wanted to keep you talking to me. To keep you interested. I had already
recognised you from school and the photos in the dean's office, but I don’t
know. When we started talking, I guess I just wanted you to like me, and I
could tell it wasn’t going to be easy.”
His honestly catches me off guard. I’ve always been aware of the way I
come across to other people but still hearing him point it out like that makes
me feel a little uneasy. I take in a shaky breath, watching his eyes dance
across my face. “Thanks for being honest.”
“What about you?” he asks, nudging his foot into mine.
“My first thought was: God, I hope he doesn’t die right now because
that would suck,” I start, remembering the night at the party, watching him
convulse over the sink. He chuckles lightly. “And then, I thought you were
pretty annoying but you’re more tolerable now.”
“Just tolerable, huh?” he says, plucking the phone out of my hand. I roll
my lips between my teeth and nod, trying not to smile. “Okay, I’ll take it.
Did you go through any phases growing up?”
“Oh my God, way too many to count,” I say, shoving my hot face into
my hands.
“Tell me now. I want to know what little Wren was like,” Miles pleads,
pulling at my hands. I try to ignore the way the electricity shoots up my
arms from his touch.
“Well, my first phase was making everybody call me Wren instead of
my first name,” I say shuddering. He looks at me, his eyebrows drawn.
“Wait? What?”
"Amelia is my first name, and my middle name is Wren. I hated the way
Amelia sounded so I told everyone to call me Wren and it stuck.” I shrug
my shoulders and he just stares at me in awe.
“Okay, so what was little Amelia Wren like?”
“Oh, she was a lot. I went through my One Direction phase; a lot later
than I’d like to admit. I once went through a British phase, where I forced
everyone in my house to speak with a British accent for a week. I also
forced my family to eat my terrible creations that I thought were gourmet
meals after watching Master Chef, but they were really just random
condiments that I found in the refrigerator. I was just a general nightmare. I
thought that I didn’t have friends in middle school other than Scarlett,
Kennedy, and Gigi because I was skating all the time but it’s because I was
a little weirdo,” I say in one go, surprising myself at how much I just
rambled. Miles stares at me with wide eyes and a huge smile.
“I think that’s the most you’ve spoken to me in one sitting,” he says
through his wide smile. I roll my eyes and he laughs. “Why do you always
talk about skating like you hate it?”
“What do you mean?”
“I don’t know. The other day, you were saying how hard you work and
how it isn’t fun. It sounds like you’ve quite literally been training all your
life. If you don’t like it, why don’t you just quit?”
No one has downright asked me that in a long time. What can I say?
This has been my mom's dream for her whole life until she was injured.
Her first daughter couldn’t handle the ice and I was her only hope. I put
the work in, I got good and now it’s the only thing I can do. The only thing
I’m good for.
“It’s complicated,” I mutter but he doesn’t seem convinced. “That’s a
story for another day. What was little Miles like?” He gives me a
sympathetic smile before dropping it. If we got into that now, we’d be here
for hours.
“I wasn’t as crazy as you, that’s for sure,” he begins. “I don’t think I
went through any phases exactly. The only thing I can really remember
loving as a kid was hockey. Carter and I lived and breathed hockey. It was
all we talked about. We could go weeks at a time talking about the same
game over and over. I guess I’m still in that phase, though.”
I see the way his face changes when he talks about him. It’s nostalgic
but pained. Something in him smooths out when he talks about him.
Remembrance. He looks a little lost. Distant. As if talking about him has
made him materialise in front of him.
“Sorry, I don’t think that really answered the question,” he says after a
while.
“No, it’s okay,” I reply. I’ve always been a physically affectionate
person, so I don’t hesitate before I reach out and put my hand over his. He
flips over his hand, so his palm is facing up. We both look at our hands
before I slip my hand into his. It feels strange but I need to comfort him in
some way. “I can tell you really miss him.”
“He was my best friend. My brother.”
“We don’t have to talk about him if you don’t want to,” I whisper. He
shakes his head.
“It’s okay. I brought him up.” He squeezes my hand before letting go.
He stands up, groaning as he stretches. “Come on. We need to get back to
work.”
“Do we have to?” I moan, falling on my back. Miles stands next to my
aching body, towering over me.
“This was your idea. What is it that you say? Beauty is pain,” he chants.
I reach my arms up and he grabs my hands, pulling me up. When I’m
standing upright in front of him, I almost sway over.
“Aw, are you calling me beautiful?” I mock as I shake out my arms and
legs.
“You didn’t need me to tell you that, Wren,” he whispers before tapping
me on the shoulder and sprinting to the other side of the gym. Why does
this grown man love to play tag?
*
The car journey home is more chaotic than it was on the way there.
Miles still sung – horribly –but it was absolute torture when we was stuck in
traffic. We’re almost outside his house when Miles stops the music abruptly
and looks at me. I turn to him for a second before pulling into his driveway.
I look back at his house.
Then back to him.
He’s still staring.
“What?” Suddenly I feel uncomfortable under his hot gaze.
“How many guys have you slept with?” he asks without hesitation.
“Is that one of the questions?” I ask back, turning to him. His face is
serious but there’s something swirling in his eyes. Curiosity? Desperation?
“No.”
“Then why do you need to know that?”
“I’m your boyfriend, I think I’m meant to know,” he argues.
Fake boyfriend, I want to say. I shake my head at him. He unclips his
seatbelt and opens the door. He gives me a pretend smile and then drops it
as he gets out of the door.
He looks adorable and ridiculous at the same time. He walks towards his
front door, stomping like a child, before I wind down my window shout
after him.
“One and a half,” I shout loudly, almost cringing at myself. He turns
around, jogging back to me until he’s at my door.
“What?” he a, leaning his arms on the hood of the car.
“One and a half. That’s how many guys I’ve slept with,” I say quieter
this time. His face unknots with confusion as he looks at me intensely.
“A half?” he asks, not hiding the surprise in his tone. "What the fuck
does that mean?"
“He couldn’t make me come,” I murmur. I watch Miles’ throat as he
swallows audibly, his pupils becoming dilated. I start the car up again and
change the gear. “Bye, Miles.”
“You… You can’t leave like that,” he stutters.
“See you later, alligator,” I shout as I back out of his drive, leaving his
jaw open and hands hanging at his sides.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 11
MILES
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 12
WREN
We fire out more questions on the drive home, each question getting
more ridiculous. The stupider the better, he said. His house and my
apartment are actually a lot closer together than I thought. Realistically, I
could jog from my house to his and back in fifteen minutes. I just don’t
know how I didn’t pay more attention it before.
It's like he's been hiding in plain sight.
He insists on walking me to my door after parking. I’ve found myself
warming up to him a lot more after tonight. It finally feels like we’re actual
friends. Not just fake dates. Especially after he helped me. Most guys would
have run the other way if they saw their girl having a full-blown meltdown
in a party bathroom. But he didn’t. Yes, it’s the bare minimum but he
stayed.
“I hope this is your last question,” he groans when we get out of the
elevator to my apartment door. I lean my back against my door, and he
towers over me, his dark eyes boring into mine.
“It is, I promise.” I pause. “What is your love language?”
“Isn’t it obvious?”
“Okay,” I whistle at his expected answer. “So, physical touch? Got it.”
He nods. “Anyone who says anything else is either a virgin or a liar. Or
both,” he drawls, a wicked grin spreading across his face. “What’s yours?”
“The same. And words of affirmation,” I say, my voice suddenly quiet,
remembering the way his hand felt on my stomach at the party. His breath
on my neck. He raises his eyebrows while brushing away one of my stands
of hair from my face. He shakes his head a little. “What? Are you
surprised?”
He brings his head close to my ear.
Too close.
His hot breath tickles my throat. His thumb traces small ovals from the
sensitive part of my collarbone to the side of my neck where I’m sure he
can hear my pulse hammering. I take in a shaky breath, my legs suddenly
ready to give out beneath me.
“No, I’m not surprised, baby. I heard the noise you made when I
touched you earlier,” he murmurs, each syllable reverberating through my
body. I close my eyes quickly before placing my hands on his chest, gently
pushing some space between us.
“You just called me ‘baby.’ Unironically, might I add,” I say
defensively, blinking up at him, trying to ignore the rest of the sentence.
Miles grins. “Sure did, baby.”
I shudder and pretend to gag. “I think I just threw up in my mouth a
little.” He laughs as if it’s the funniest thing he’s heard all day and I can't
help but join in.
"If you call me 'baby,' I'm going to call you Milesy."
"Call me whatever you want, baby. 'Daddy' is also acceptable," he
replies, smirking. I laugh at him and shove him in the arm, and he laughs
too.
When we calm down, I say, “I had a good time today. Shitty food and
all.”
“Me too, but I don’t think the food was that bad.”
“This is why we changed your diet,” I laugh as I open the door from
behind me. “Good night, Milesy.”
“Good night, baby,” he whispers before turning on his heels.
When I slip into bed later that night, I feel lighter.
I’m trying to convince myself that these sorts of panicking feelings just
happen. They aren’t going to determine my life and this fake relationship. I
tried to shake off all those feelings in the shower, but my hands still shake a
little when I reach for my phone.
When I unlock it, it’s instantly flooded with followers and tags. I knew
Miles was popular, but I didn’t know the extent of it until now. I’ve got
follows on Instagram from people that I’ve never spoken to before and likes
from the people that shunned me after regionals. A strange sensation runs
through my body when I click onto Miles’ profile and there it is.
The most recent post in his grid is a picture of me in the diner we went
to a candid of me nudging around my fries as I look down at them, my hair
almost covering my face, but you can tell it’s me. I don’t know how I
missed him taking the photo. I look over it again, take note of what I can
see before my eyes wander down to the caption.
Jesus Christ. My girl? Why do those two words make my heart constrict
and breathing stop? They shouldn't. He doesn’t mean it, obviously, but I
don’t hate the feeling of pretending he did. I wander down to the comments
which are a mixture of You guys are so cute, When did this happen? and
Who is she? From this picture alone I’ve gained a shit ton of followers. I
check my DM’s and I scroll to find any names that I can recognise. I pull up
Gigi’s chat.
I know Gigi enough to laugh it off and shut off my phone. When sleep
pulls me under, I have the biggest and most ridiculous smile on my face.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 13
MILES
Since Sophia's, I’ve been trying my best to find a way for me and
Wren to really get a handle on this fake dating thing. Parties aren’t really
her thing which is understandable. I mean, who really wants to be around a
bunch of sweaty teenagers who are high as fuck? She has a point there but
it’s very limited to go anywhere that will create some sort of excitement
around our relationship. I don’t want to push her into going to parties if it’s
going to freak her out. I also don’t think that me being around alcohol is a
good idea when I need to get my head on straight.
I’ve spent the last few days moping around, feeling pathetic as I throw a
ball at my wall from my bed, watching it bounce back. Is this how it usually
feels when I haven’t had a drink? I’ve never realised how lonely I was until
I’ve seen what it's like to be around Wren. Now, I feel like smashing my
head against the wall out of boredom.
I finally put myself out of my misery and throw on jeans and a hoodie
and jump into my car. I connect my phone to the bluetooth and put on the
playlist that I’ve started to put together for Wren. Okay, it’s not for her but
it’s also…for her. It’s just songs that not only remind me of her but songs
that I know she likes from going to the gym and hearing them on repeat.
When I’m not on the ice, I love to discover new music. Carter and I would
have a pre-game pump up playlist that we would listen to before every
game. Now, just hovering over that playlist makes my stomach turn.
Instead, I put on ‘Jump Then Fall,’ by Taylor Swift and it immediately puts
me in a good mood as I drive around my side of town, desperately trying
not to go straight to Wren’s apartment.
I mean, technically I should be able to go and see her when I want since
she’s my girlfriend. Fake girlfriend but still. She must be stalking me or
something because the second the song finishes my phone lights up with a
text from her.
The bubbles appear, suggesting that she’s typing but they disappear
again and I laugh to myself for getting under her skin. I can’t help it
sometimes. She’s just too easy to wind up and lucky for her, I like it when
she gets mad at me.
Wren: Miles, would you please come study with me so I don’t fail
my test. Not to be dramatic but you’re my last hope.
Me: That’s my girl.
Me: Wait. What is that supposed to mean? I’m supposed to be
your first choice.
Wren: Just get to the library.
Me: I’m on my way.
I can count on one hand how many times I’ve been to the campus
library. It’s a large Adam-style building that contrasts the other modern
architecture around the rest of the school, right across from Florentino’s.
Me and books don’t mix well, which is why I chose a course where I could
do minimal reading. I can read a banging biography but textbooks are a no-
go.
I walk through the large doors, scanning my NU card onto the machine
to go through the security gates and I’m in the middle of unknown territory.
There are floor-to-ceiling bookshelves, filled with deep brown paperbacks
and textbooks. I know it’s a library, but it’s too quiet here. So quiet that the
second I accidentally step on the wrong piece of wood, the few people that
are in here snap out of their study focus and give a death glare. But it also
draws my attention to the one person I wanted to see.
Wren is sitting at a table tucked in the back of the study zones, the only
person in her section. She has a pile of books on the right side of her, her
laptop displayed in front of her. She looks different in this setting. She’s not
sweaty and panting from skating or working out. Instead, she’s got owl
frame glasses on, her hair is tied into a high ponytail and she’s wearing a
white tank top and shorts, her knee pulled up to her chin.
I walk over to her with the biggest grin on my face and I step on another
wrong plank of wood. You’d think that they’d try to make the floors as
soundless as possible but no. Wren shakes her head at me, pulling up her
glasses to rest on the top of her head.
“Could you be any louder?” she whisper-shouts when I sit across from
her.
“Hello to you too, girlfriend,” I say sarcastically, leaning on my elbows,
looking at her adoringly. Maybe the cute puppy look gets a lot of girls going
but Wren could not look more turned off if she tried. I reach over to tap her
glasses and pull them onto her face. “These are cute.”
Her nose crinkles as she rolls her eyes. “Thanks,” she murmurs, looking
down onto her laptop and then back to me. “I need you to test me with these
questions.” I raise me eyebrows and she whispers, “Please.”
She turns the laptop towards me and I see the list of questions she has in
her Word Doc about a book called ‘Atonement.’ I have no idea what that is
but the questions seem interesting. Well, interesting if you’re into literature.
Is this my pathetic way of admitting that anything that Wren’s into, means I
am into it too by proxy.
“Is this all you need me for?” I ask, scrolling through the endless list.
She nods, scribbling something down onto a notebook. “Couldn’t Kennedy
and Scarlett do this? As much as I know I’m going to enjoy asking these
questions, I know I wasn’t your first choice.”
“Do you have any volume control?” she whispers, pinning me a scary
look. I didn’t think I was talking that loud but fine. “Scarlett has an exam
today and Kennedy’s working.”
“And you don’t have any friends from your class?”
She shrugs before shaking her head. “Just ask me the damn questions,
Milesy.”
And I do.
I learn all about the cultural and social setting of the novel and a bunch
of other random shit that I don’t need to know. I don’t know how she’s
worried about passing this exam when she answers every question
immediately and exactly with the answers that she’s written down. I have
no idea what most of the stuff she’s talking about means, but it seems like
she has a handle on it.
When I finally get to the last question, I turn the laptop back around to
her. “What’s next?”
She scrolls through it, picking up her very annotated copy of the novel
before typing something down. “I need to write down some last minute
notes and then I’m going to do a timed essay.”
“And you need me here for that, why?”
“So you can confiscate my devices. I’ll get too distracted if I have them
in front of me. It’s what me and the girls usually do,” she explains. That
makes sense. I can barely study when I’ve got anything in front of me.
Maybe I should come to the library more often but if she’s here…maybe
that’s not a good idea.
“Do you have that little self-control?” I tease, making sure to keep my
voice quiet.
“I have a lot more self-control than you do,” she challenges. “I’m just
gonna make these notes and then do the essay. You should go and explore
while I write.”
“And risk getting death-stared by every person in here? No thanks,” I
say, leaning back in my chair, crossing my arms. “I can just watch you
study.”
“Fine, you perv,” she murmurs before getting back into the zone.
Watching her study is slightly motivating me. I know I should have
brought some of my own stuff with me, to study for exams that aren’t for
months, but I would have just got distracted anyway. Have I mentioned how
beautiful this woman is? How is she managing to read, write and listen to a
podcast all at once? I can’t figure it out for the life of me but her dedication
to studying as well as skating is one of the most attractive things I’ve ever
seen. I’ve been making paper boats with her spare paper for almost an hour.
She’s still not ready to write her essay yet so I’m this close to dying of
boredom. I tap her pen with the fluffy end next to the laptop as she types
away.
“Wren. Wren. Wren. Wren,” I press and I know it’s about to irritate the
fuck out of her. “Wrenny, Wren, Wren.”
She stops typing, slamming the laptop shut dramatically. “What!?”
I smile wide, popping my dimple out and everything. “Hi.”
Her face almost breaks for a second but she sticks her tongue in her
cheek before opening her laptop again. She starts typing as she says, “Don’t
do that.”
“Do what?” I ask innocently.
“Annoy me like a puppy.”
“Isn’t that what boyfriends are for?”
“Real boyfriends,” she clarifies. “Real boyfriends can annoy me. Real
boyfriends carry my books for me. Real boyfriends don’t rest until they’ve
given me the best orgasm of my life. But you, Miles Davis, are my fake
boyfriend.”
Because I have no self-control, I say, “Are you trying to hint something,
Wren?”
“No,” she snaps, blushing. “All I’m saying is, it’s empty in here so you
don’t need to do that. Rule number three.”
Fucking rule number three.
*
When Wren finally finishes her essay, she picks up all of her shit and we
walk across to Florentino’s. It’s busy here, as always. This shop is rivalling
Starbucks with the special menu the school has created. If there is one good
thing about NU besides hockey, it’s this cafe. We walk up to the counter, my
arm around her shoulder, Wren’s books clutched to her test, and I’m sure we
look like every cliched couple in a teen drama.
“What’s your usual order?” I ask when we join the line. She tilts her
head to the side, thinking for a second.
“It depends what the special is. Ken is always whipping something up in
there,” she says, nodding to her best friend who is working frantically
behind the counter. “Her mango smoothies are fantastic.”
“In this climate? It’s fucking freezing outside and you want a mango
smoothie?” I ask, clearly shocked by her poor choice of drink.
“Okay, fine. What would you suggest?”
“Deluxe hot chocolate, obviously,” I say flippantly. “It’s fucking
expensive here but it’s good.”
“That’s not the most expensive thing on the menu,” she whispers,
shifting from one foot to the other as we move further down the line.
“Really? What is?”
“The caramel crunch cappuccino,” she concedes, avoiding eye contact
with me.
“Let me guess. That’s your usual order,” I say, laughing. She nods.
“Even with Kennedy’s discount, it’s still ridiculous,” Wren replies. “It is
the best drink though.”
“I’m a nineteen year old student. What makes you think I can afford a
seven dollar coffee?” I spit out and she laughs, shrugging. “You’re lucky,
darling. You are the only exception.”
“Oh my God, you’re quoting Paramore to me right now,” she gasps. She
fans herself dramatically. “I think I’m falling for you, Miles.”
I laugh with her and nudge her in the shoulder to move forward since
we’re next in the line. When Kennedy sees us she smiles wide, clearly our
biggest fan. She’s dressed in her pink Florentino's uniform and her apron
that is covered in small pins, showing off all the groups she supports.
“There is my favourite couple,” she exclaims. “What can I get for you?”
“The most expensive drink you have,” Wren chimes in, smiling at me.
I’m going to be fourteen dollars more broke than I was this morning but if it
makes her smile like that, I’d do it again in a heartbeat.
“Coming right up,” Ken says, rushing off to serve the next person after
I pay.
We walk out of Florentino’s sipping our drinks walking towards Radnor
Hall where Wren’s classes take place. I’m holding both of our drinks in my
hand while Wren hooks one arm into mine, holding her books with the
other. It would probably be super cringe if I was feeding Wren her drink if it
was anyone but her. I swear every time we walk past someone, they do a
double take. I don’t think I’m ever going to get used to this. The stares. The
whispers. The looks.
We’ve kept mostly quiet as we drink our cappuccinos. I can’t lie. This
drink is amazing and unfortunately worth the money.
“Wren! Oh my god. I was just looking for you,” a girl with dark brown
hair rushes towards us when we’re walking past the library. The girl I’ve
never seen before in my life hooks Wren’s arm into hers, taking her away
from me.
“You were?” Wren asks, looking back to me as her friend walks them in
front of me.
“Yes! I was trying to find you to talk about the essay we had to do for
Atonement,” she explains. “Aren’t you going to introduce me to your
boyfriend?”
Wren turns around, looking at me sceptically, her eyes suddenly wide
and unsure. “This is Miles Davis. I’m sure you know him. Miles, this is
Katie Buxbaum from my creative writing class.”
“So you guys really are dating?” Katie asks, looking between the both
of us. We nod. Her eyes narrow for a second before she nods again, slowly.
“Cool. So will you guys come to my party tonight, then? It’s a lowkey thing
but most people from class are going.”
I’m about to respond but Wren awkwardly unlink her arms with Katie’s
and picks up her drink from my hand and throws it into the trash.She slips
her fingers into mine instead, signalling to me that she doesn’t want to talk
to her.
“Thanks for the offer but we’re busy tonight. We’re like newly weds.
Just can’t be apart from each other,” Wren says, her voice an octave higher
than usual as she snuggles into my side. “I’ll see you in class.” Wren
practically runs down the corridor, pulling me along with her, turning the
sharp corner until we’re away from her and panting.
“What the hell was all that about?” I ask when Katie is out of sight.
“That could have been a perfect opportunity.”
"I didn’t want to go, okay?” Wren pants, her big green eyes boring into
me. “My social battery has already run out and I swear I’ve never spoken to
Katie before today. The thing is, she’s really nice but I don’t want to build
our friendship around the basis that I’m sort-of popular now. I’m sure she’s
great but I just-”
I cut her off, placing my arms on her shoulders as she clutches the
books to her chest. “Hey. Can you chill? I just wanted to know why you
didn’t want to go and now I do. You don’t have to explain everything to me.
I’m not going to push you. Okay?”
“Okay.”
“Okay. Now give me your books,” I demand.
Her eyebrows crease. “What?”
“Let me hold your books for you, woman,” I say, plucking the books
from her. “Oh, and your bag too.” I sling her tote bag over my shoulder,
feeling ridiculous and proud all at the same time. She shakes her head at
me, laughing.
She hooks her arm through mine again, walking us down the corridor
towards her class. “These are the kind of fake-boyfriend perks I need.”
“You know…” I start. “I can give you all the perks if you want.”
“I’m good,” she replies, scrunching her nose. Her phone rings and
because her hands are finally free, she reaches into her back pocket and
pulls it out. “I’ve got to take this. It’s my dad. My class is jsut there. I’ll see
you later.”
She starts to collect her books and her bag from my shoulder. She starts
to walk, leaving me behind but I call after her. “I think your forgetting
something.”
“What? I have all my books,” she concedes.
“My kiss.” I grin.
“Right. How could I possibly forget?” she mimics, walking back up to
me and presses the softest kiss to my cheek.
This is going to be perfect.
I get to watch her study. I carry her books. I walk her to class and then I
get a kiss on the cheek. Fake dating Wren Hackerly might be the best thing
to ever happen to me.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 14
WREN
What was I doing and why couldn’t I make myself stop? Even though
I’ve kept up with my gym and skating routine, the little free time that I have
has been spent with Miles. Miles Fucking Davis has taken over my life and
the worst part is – I don’t mind.
I knew the girls were right when they said he made me a happier person
because he does. He doesn’t pester me about skating, about my diet, about
school. We just talk. A lot of it is nonsense but we talk. And it feels good.
He’s been pushing the line lately but so have I. There is no denying that
there is constant sexual tension between us but we’re both working hard on
not acting on it. Sure, we’ve both said a flirty comment here or there but in
private we’ve never done anything that we should be doing in public. I am
still sticking to my main rule: if this get too real, in whatever way, we have
to let each other know. I can’t risk this becoming too powerful.
It wasn’t easy helping Miles get back to his position that he was in
before everything happened. We’ve been to the gym nearly every day over
the past two weeks, gradually getting more difficult but he’s stayed on top.
Being seen around campus with Miles definitely has its perks. I never
used to wander around other than when I was on my way to class, but it
turns out there is a life outside of the rink.
We went to the campus library, Miles’ arm over my shoulder and I
could have sworn there was paparazzi. Okay, maybe not but it felt like it.
We were constantly interrupted by other people who were calling him ‘bro’
as if they spoke before that interaction. The guys want to be him. I get it.
He’s hot and he’s popular but by the way some of these guys are up his ass,
you’d think he’s Brad Pitt or some shit.
And the girls — they are even worse. They come over and say “Hi” as
if they weren’t the same people who mocked me after regionals. As if they
weren’t the ones who dropped out of figure skating, leaving the rest of us to
somehow salvage the little hope our team has. I guess people are just glad
to see us happy again.
I’ve spent most of this morning at the rink, spinning and gliding until
my head starts to throb. I’m trying to add the finishing touches to my
routine for the showcase but filming it has been a nightmare.
Scarlett doesn’t have the patience to stand and film it for me, even
though she says that she loves to watch me skate. And Kennedy is just a lost
cause who claims that her arms ache too much to be able to film a five-
minute performance. I go through my routine full out for the millionth time
and I don’t even need to strain my eyes to see that he’s here.
“You’ve got to stop sneaking up on me like this,” I say as I land my
Lutz on a wobbly leg, groaning at myself.
“Do you have eyes at the back of your head or something?” Miles asks
as I see his blurry figure walking down the last set of stairs. He stands at the
end of the rink, his forearms dangling on the railing, a lazy smile hanging
on his mouth.
“No, you just breathe really loud,” I say sarcastically. He rolls his eyes.
“What do you want?”
“Do I have to want something to speak to my girlfriend?”
I still haven’t gotten used to those words on his mouth, no matter how
fake they are and how many times he says it. Only two people have ever
called me their girlfriend: Augustus and my two-week boyfriend in middle
school, Ryan. To hear anyone say it, it’d be insane, but coming from him
it’s even more strange.
“My bad. What’s the matter, honey?” I amend. He shudders at the pet-
name which makes me equally as uncomfortable.
“Okay, chill. We’re nineteen not ninety,” he says shaking his head. “Our
first game is coming up, it’s only a friendly but I can’t play yet. So, I was
thinking that we could go together, to watch. Everyone will go insane when
they see me on the bench.”
I can’t help but laugh at his confidence. “How are you so sure everyone
will go ‘insane’?”
“Because women love to scream my name,” he whispers. I fight off the
heat on my face as I push away from him, skating backwards.
“You’re disgusting, you know,” I shout, even though we’re not that far
away.
“You can stop acting like you don’t like me. It’s not cute anymore,
Wrenny,” he whines.
“Who said I was pretending?” I grin. He opens his mouth before closing
it again, shaking off whatever he was going to say. “And you calling me
Wrenny isn’t cute either.” I groan at his insistent use of the nickname
Kennedy introduced him to.
“Watching you act like you hate it is the best part of my day,” he says
proudly, grinning at me with that ridiculous face of his. I roll my eyes, but
he can’t see because I’m in the middle of turning. Then a thought pops into
my head, reminding me why I was thinking of him in the first place.
“Oh shit,” I say, tumbling towards him.
“What? Are you okay?”
“Yeah, I’m fine. I just forgot to ask you something and it’s kind of late
notice,” I explain, frustrated with myself for not asking earlier. “Can you
pass me my guards? They’re in my bag.”
Miles turns to look in my gym bag and pulls out my white guards for
my skates. I glide to exit the rink, holding onto the railing as I slip them on
before sitting down on the bench, finally being able to breathe. He slides
next to me, wonder and curiosity dancing in his eyes.
“What’s up?” Miles questions.
“My dad invited us to this gala event at one of his hotels. He said he
wants to meet you, but I know we said we’d discuss the whole family thing,
but it slipped my mind. It’s in three days. No one from NU should be there
but my dad knows we’re ‘dating.’ You can totally say no if you’re not
comfortable and I can just make an excuse,” I ramble, my hands doing most
of the talking.
“I’ll come,” he replies quickly. “Should be fun, right? Evan goes to
galas all the time. Isn’t it like the Oscars for people who have boring jobs?”
“Yeah, sort of,” I laugh.
“Do you think he’ll like me? Your dad,” he asks, wearily.
“Definitely. He likes everybody,” I say truthfully. He draws back a little,
clearly hesitant. Without thinking about it, I touch his knee reassuringly.
“I’m not just saying that, either. He’s a very nice guy and he’s probably my
favourite person to ever walk the Earth. He’ll probably call you ‘son’ the
second you meet.”
That makes him smile. I really am not just saying it. My dad is one of
the friendliest people I’ve met. Sometimes, he’s a little too friendly which is
why I often question how he’s managed to stay in the hotel business for so
long. He’s nice and he’s kind but he won’t let people walk all over him,
that’s for sure.
“Another thing….” I draw out when the thought comes to my head.
“Usually with these events, my dad books me a suite to stay for the night to
save me travelling back home late. When I told him about you, he got us a
room. Obviously, you don’t have to stay the night but just so you know.”
His face lights up. “You think I’m going to pass on going to another
fancy hotel with you after seeing that gym?”
“I feel like there was a sliver of a compliment in there for me,” I say,
squinting my eyes.
“There was, Wrenny. There was.”
I roll my eyes, again, at his use of that name. I grab my bag and stand
up before slinging it over my shoulder. “Wear something nice and I’ll pick
you up at three.”
“You got it, Wrenny Rainbow,” he says with a commander’s salute.
“Hey, you've already got 'baby' and 'Wrenny,' so please don’t tell me
that’s going to be a thing too.”
“Oh, it already is.”
*
“I’m never going to forgive you for this, Wren. I have so many
emotions inside of me I think I might explode. Actually, I’m moving out,”
Kennedy groans, dropping onto the floor dramatically.
“I’ll be moving out with her,” Scarlett adds, falling to floor on top of
Kennedy.
I have just read them the latest chapter to Stolen Kingdom and I killed
off one of the main love interests, Erik. He was a personal favourite of the
both of them. I kind of loved him too. He was the kind of book boyfriend
that all my friends obsessed with. Dark features, too tall for anyone,
dominant and completely lacking any sorts of self-awareness. I poke them
with my feet from the couch as they squirm.
“You guys are so dramatic. He’s not even real,” I say, joining them on
the floor.
“He was real to me!” Kennedy sobs, throwing her hand across her face
melodramatically. Scarlett sits up, tutting at her as if she wasn’t on the floor
a few second ago. “I already fan-cast Austin Butler to play him in the
movie.”
“It’s not going to be a movie,” I mutter under my breath. Kennedy
pretends to sulk with a pout.
“Speaking of things that aren’t real… How are you and Loverboy?”
Scarlett asks with a shoulder shimmy. Over the past few weeks, I’ve gotten
used to Scarlett’s variations of nicknames for Miles. I’ve heard, Hockey
Freak, Milesy Cyrus, Loverboy, Miles a Million, and Miley. Honestly, I
don’t hate them.
“Things are good. He’s getting better with training, and I got a ton of
Instagram followers. Oh, and Gigi approves. Things are looking up,” I say
proudly.
“Cool but how are…you know…things?” Scarlett repeats with more
emphasis, gesturing suggestively towards my private areas. Kennedy shoots
up now, looking at us with expectant eyes, mischief dancing in them.
“What she’s trying to say is: have you fucked him yet?” Ken asks
without batting an eye.
“I wasn’t going to say ‘fucked,’” Scarlett drawls with an eye roll. Her
face suddenly turns serious. “But yes, have you?”
“No, I haven’t. And I don’t think I’m going to anytime soon,” I sigh.
“But the sexual frustration is slowly eating away at me. I’ve burned through
two sets of batteries for my vibrator in the past week.”
I hate to admit it but it’s true. Seeing him nearly every day has not
helped the throbbing between my legs. He's an attractive guy and we have
to go to the gym together. Listening to him grunt and groan is not making
this any easier. Not because I want him but because I haven't slept with
anyone in months.
We’re both attracted to each other, that much is clear, but the second we
act on it outside of the contract, it could be messy. It also means that every
time I close my eyes he’s right fucking there.
“You dirty bitch,” Scarlett mocks, her face wide in a smile. I shove my
face between my hands. “You need to sleep with someone and quick. It
doesn’t even have to be with Miles. It isn’t in your little contract, is it?”
I lift my face up to them. “Technically it’s not but I don’t want to do
that. It feels too close to cheating, and I’d feel disgusting afterwards.”
“Because that’s so much better than a vibrator,” Kennedy retorts
sarcastically.
“Well, at least it can make me finish," I say, getting up from the floor.
We all burst out laughing until our stomachs hurt. Kennedy is the
slapper, hitting us until we’re basically bruised while she laughs hard. I’m
the one with the wheeze and Scarlett just sounds like an evil baby genius.
“Poor Augustus,” Scarlett says between her hysterical laughter. My
phone starts to ring beside me and I see my Dad's caller ID and I pick it up.
"Hi, dad," I say when I answer it.
"Emmy! I thought I wouldn't be able to get you with how busy you were
the last time you called," my dad replies, being the drama queen he is.
I laugh. "I had to go to class, dad. I'm not busy now. What's up?"
"Is your boyfriend coming to my opening gala?" he asks, leaving no
room for small talk. Before I can respond he adds, "I've sorted out the room
and everything so I hope he can. If not, it's totally fine. I understand how
you kids are these days."
"Yes, he said he can come," I say and the girls try and hold in their
laughs.
"Perfect. I can't wait to meet who has been making my daughter so
happy," he replies. I wish he could see me rolling my eyes. "I got you a
luxury suite so you don't have to worry about sleeping in different beds."
"Yeah. Dad. About that. We don't need to share a bed because-"
"Wren," he presses. "I want you to know that I trust you. And I know
that you and your mom don't have the best relationship but I don't want that
for us. If you and your boyfriend want to cuddle, who am I to stop you?"
"But dad-" I try again but he cuts me off.
"Wren. It's settled."
"Mom would never do this," I murmur, laughing at my dad's
persistence.
"Good job I'm not your mom. Isn't it, kiddo?" dad adds before cutting
the call on me.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 15
MILES
I had no fucking clue what to wear to this thing and all Wren said was
to “wear something nice.” Because that was so much help. I raided my
closet, and it turns out that I have nothing nice to wear. Not even anything
decent. I can’t show up to a fancy event with my fake girlfriend’s dad
looking like an orphan.
Luckily, I knew just the person to ask.
Evan got me a link to a good tailor who wasn’t crazy expensive, and I
dug into my savings to buy myself a suit and bow tie. It’s nothing too flashy
but it should be enough for the occasion and considering the price, maybe
even my wedding.
I thought I would be more nervous but I’m mostly just excited to get a
weekend away with her. Although our ‘contract’ says we should have
sleepovers once a week, we’ve really only done that a few times. We were
both too awkward over the whole ordeal so whenever it got late, we slipped
out of each other's houses without making a fuss. I don’t know if I could
trust myself with her in my room after what happened the last time.
Maybe I need to get laid. Not by her. But by someone. And soon.
“Please tell me you brought your outfit in your bag,” Wren pleads the
second I slip into her car in my dark jeans and faded tee. I throw my bag
into the backseat before putting on my seatbelt.
“No, Wren, I’m going to wear this to the event,” I reply sarcastically,
gesturing towards my outfit. “Obviously it’s in my bag.”
“Did you get something nice to wear?” she asks as she checks her
mirrors while backing out of my drive.
“Define what you mean by nice…” I tease, leaning over to play with the
radio until a station I don’t hate comes on. Listening to Wren’s Taylor Swift
playlist while we work out has had its effects on me. Now, I can't do
anything active without some 1989 or Reputation action. Her music cures
the soul. It has to be magic or some shit.
“I don’t know. Something charming, smart, dazzling,” she lists, staring
out at the traffic we quickly merged into. I watch her dark blue nails tap
onto the steering while and I’m hypnotised for a second.
“Aren’t I all those things anyway?” She gives me an unimpressed
glance. Maybe it’s too early for my bullshit. “Yes, I brought something
nice.”
“Okay, good,” she says softly. She murmurs something under her breath
as she taps her fingers impatiently. The car in front of us remains stationary
when the light turns green and her face heats up as she pounds the steering
wheel with her tiny fists without hitting the horn. “God! Can you drive your
fucking car!?”
I’ve never seen her road rage before, and I don’t hate the way her
cheeks flare up and her chest rises and falls. I can’t stop staring at the way
she puffs air through her nose and rolls her eyes.
Is it bad that I like it even more when she does it to me? I decide not to
say that and instead try and tread on something lighter.
She starts to angrily hum to Frank Ocean's Pink and White and it's a
little terrifying.
“You seem…tense,” I mention quietly, turning down the song. She turns
to me for a split second before focusing on the road. She looks back at me
for a beat longer as if she’s trying to see straight through my brain before
returning back to the road.
“I haven’t slept properly in almost two weeks,” she grits out, her
knuckles gripping the steering wheel.
“Why? What’s keeping you up?”
“Oh, nothing,” she says cheerfully. I can tell she’s about to go on a
sarcastic tangent. Luckily for her, it’s my favourite thing ever. “Just, having
a quarter life crisis over my career in figure skating. Oh, and my sister has
been off the grid for almost two months and my mom is starting to project
all of her frustrations onto me. The usual.”
“Wait, you have a sister? You’ve never mentioned her before,” I say,
surprised at he causal revelation of her sister which I never knew about until
just now.
“I’m sure I have,” she murmurs, giving me a sideways glance but I
shake my head with a shrug. “Her name’s Austin. Just think of my mom but
twenty-five and a ballet dancer.”
“Ah,” I nod. “You guys aren’t close?”
“We are. Sort of. She was like my mom's test run before I was born so if
I thought I had Mommy Issues, Austin has it worse. She’s been in Russia
for the last four years at this ballet program. We haven’t heard from her in a
while and everyone’s a bit worried,” she explains.
“Are you worried about her? Is that why you’re stressed?”
She groans a little, shrugging. “I am but I’m not. Austin is tough. A lot
tougher than me. She’s always been independent so I’m sure that whatever
she’s going through she’ll get through it. It only stresses me out because
when my mom doesn’t have two kids to fuss over and all the weight lands
on me. That’s why she’s been so hard on me about getting the skating stuff
sorted as soon as possible.”
My mind instantly drifts to Clara. How I’ve been pushing her away over
something she was trying to protect me from. Maybe I should reach out to
her. Carter would have told me to. She’s your sister, you big dummy, he
would say. Each time we would fight as kids, that was always his
comeback. It didn’t take me long to notice that he wanted me to have a
good relationship with my sister because he never had one with his brother.
“She’ll come around. Family is hard. Believe me, I know,” I say as
reassuringly as I can.
“You never talk about your family, and you talk about everything.” She
laughs softly. “But just so you know, you can talk to me about them. When
you want to, that is.”
“I know," I reply. "You've already got a lot on your plate and I don't
want to burden you."
She smirks, glancing at me. "See. You can be thoughtful sometimes."
"I never said I wasn't."
"I know. I just said it in my head."
As we drive over, I try and remember the countless stories she has told
me about her dad. From what I’ve heard he’s probably the only person that
Wren truly loves apart from her friends. When she talks about him, she
doesn’t hold back anything like she does with her mom. She doesn't talk
about him as if he's simply just the person responsible for creating her.
She told me about how much she adores him; how grateful she is to
have him as a dad while her mom was hard on her. Over the last three days
she’s been quizzing me on the things that her dad likes and what he doesn’t.
She drops another ambiguous message as we merge into more traffic.
“Cream cheese,” she mentions flippantly, keeping her eyes focused on
the road. I never found women driving so attractive until her. She just looks
so in control and fuck me if it doesn’t turn me on.
“Like or dislike?” I ask.
“Loathe,” she growls, slowly turning to me, her eyebrows knitted
together. I widen my eyes and slouch back in my seat, trying to suppress my
laugh.
“Okay,” I whistle. ‘No cream cheese.”
“Never any cream cheese.”
The hotel looks a lot fancier than I imagined. I have to crane my head
back to take in all the storeys of sleek black glass from top to bottom. The
inside has gold accents across most major centrepieces and along the
railings, giving it a regal touch as a grand piano sits in the foyer. Her dad
owns this? It’s insane.
Wren navigates us around as if she works here. She seems so natural at
this, as she links her arm in mine, walking us around. So comfortable. She
talks to the staff as if they are old friends that she needs to catch up with.
Honestly, I wouldn’t be surprised if they are. There is still so much that I
feel like I don’t know about her. So much that I’m dying to know.
We make our way through the glass elevator to our suite which seems to
take up most of the top floor. There are three main rooms: the master
bedroom with a California king sized bed, a huge bathroom, and a living
room space with a mini bar. Obviously, we’re not legally allowed to drink
so everything is empty, but it’s still cool regardless.
“So, I guess I’m sleeping on the couch,” I say when I return the
bedroom. Wren has begun unpacking her things onto the hangers neatly,
walking back and forth from her suitcase on the bed to the closet. I don’t
understand why she insisted on bringing so many clothes for such a short
trip.
“Miles. I had to through the troubel of having to explain to my dad that
I wanted sperate beds. He's doing the whole 'I trust you' thing. Plus, this bed
could fit like three times the size of us on here and there would still be
room. We can share it for one night, right?” Wren explains, turning around
to me. “You probably won’t even notice I’m there.”
“Okay but no funny business,” I relay, mainly reminding myself to keep
it in my pants. I could never not notice her. She laughs and walks towards
me.
“It’s you, you should be worried about, not me,” she says into my ear
quietly, her hand on my bicep. She brushes past me gently as I swallow.
Hard.
This is going to be a great fucking weekend.
After an hour of dilly dallying, we’re finally getting ready for the gala.
I’m stood in front of the wide full-length mirror, watching a YouTube video
on how to tie my bow tie. I don’t know I let Evan talk me out of getting a
clip on one. He said something about making a good impression. I’m
grunting with frustration when I see a glimpse of her in the mirror behind
me. Her eyes lock with mine and I don’t bother to hide my libido. She looks
devastating.
She’s dressed in a dark blue evening gown, her tits looking perfect,
stuck in the thin straps. Her blonde hair is tied back into a neat bun with a
small silver clip. Her silver earrings dangle almost to her shoulders which
match with her heels. She walks towards me, painfully slowly and my
hands fumble around my tie.
“Need help with that?” she asks gently, gesturing towards my bow tie. I
nod, basically foaming at the mouth. When did I forget how to speak?
Her delicate hands come towards my neck as she unties the knot I made.
Very slowly. I watch as her hands work at the mess I made, and I try and
swallow. She looks up at me, smirking, before looking back down to my tie.
I can't ignore the breathiness in her voice as she asks, “What?”
“Promise me you’ll come back here with me tonight,” I get out when I
find my voice. Her eyebrows furrow. She looks up at me, but I watch her in
the mirror.
“What do you mean?”
“You look…fucking stunning, Wren,” I whisper, and I make the mistake
of looking at her properly. Her wide green-brown eyes stare into mine, her
lips slightly parted. “I’m just saying I won’t be surprised if someone tried to
take you home with them.”
“The only person taking me home tonight is you,” she murmurs. My
heart skips multiple beats as I almost topple over. I know it shouldn’t take
this long for her to tie my tie, but her hands are still on me, even when I can
see it’s done.
“Are you sure your dad will like me?”
“Yes, I’m sure.” She looks up at me as she takes a little step back. Her
heel almost catches with the carpet, but I pull my hand around her waist to
steady her. As if on instinct, her hands come to lapels of my blazer, pulling
herself up into me. "Now stop worrying."
“What if I bring up cream cheese?”
“Why would you ever bring up cream cheese?” she asks, the lines of a
dimple battling her cheeks.
“I don’t know. I might get nervous and say something about it.”
“If you do, I will go home with someone else tonight right after I
murder you.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 16
WREN
I can feel myself melting into him. His large hands slip around my
neck, his fingers curling in my hair as he dips my head back, deepening the
kiss. Our mouths move against each other in sync. Like we were made to do
this. For each other.
Miles Davis is kissing me and I'm kissing him back. What is this life?
I hear myself whimper softly when he slips his tongue into my mouth,
but I don’t act like I didn’t. Instead, I hold onto the lapels of his blazer and
pull him into me until he can’t move any further.
I’m sure this is more than just pretending to kiss. More than putting on a
show for whoever is watching. But for some reason, I don’t seem to care. I
don’t care that I’m enjoying it. The only thing I can focus on his how he
feels against my mouth for the first time. It’s not like anyone can see what
the inside of our mouths looks like. I don’t know what it looks like either,
but it feels like heaven. It feels safe and exhilarating at the same time. I
knew we would have to do this one day, but I didn’t expect it to feel so
good. I feel him laugh and smile against my mouth when another sound
leaves my mouth without permission when his hand dives deeper into my
hair.
When did I get so over my head over a kiss?
I pull apart from him.
“What was that for?” I breathe when I’m able to catch my breath. I 'm
panting like a dog. He blinks back at me, his mouth parted, and his pupils
dilated.
“It was that guy. He was staring at you again and he was about to come
over here. I had to give him a reason not to. And would look at that? He’s
gone. Sorry, I should have asked first,” he rambles. I can feel the heat
rushing up my neck again in waves as I watch his mouth move. That mouth
that was just on mine.
“No. It's okay,” I say, our faces still too close. I push further away so our
noses aren’t basically touching anymore. “You sure you didn't make that up
just so you could kiss me?”
“I wouldn't need to make anything up to get you to kiss me,” he mutters
before looking away.
*
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 17
MILES
Sleeping on the edge of the bed that night in the hotel was fucking
torture. As soon as she told me to stop, I went back to the room, and I was
knocked out: part exhaustion and part frustration. I knew that offering to
massage her feet was a bad idea. And I knew what I was doing in the
bathroom also wasn’t smart, but I needed to touch her. After hearing her
moan into my mouth, I wanted to do it again. I knew she wouldn’t let me
until it was necessary.
It got worse when she got out of bed in the middle of the night,
accidentally waking me. She went out of the room to get some water, half
asleep, in nothing but pink underwear and a white tank top. I didn’t even
notice that I was sleeping next to her, half naked, the whole night. Yep.
Pure.
Unadulterated.
Fucking.
Torture.
I thought she would be willing to break the rules just once, but she
didn’t, and we didn’t talk about it the next morning. We slept and woke up,
got ready and headed home as if nothing happened. As if I wasn’t willing to
eat her out on the bathroom counter.
Since this is our second year at NU, we were invited to the Sophomore-
Only Drive-In that the school organises. We got to take part in voting for
the movie and this year’s theme was thriller. ‘Us’ by Jordan Peele definitely
wasn’t my first option but it gives Wren and I a perfect opportunity to
showcase our relationship before the hockey game next week. The only
problem: Wren’s been avoiding me like the plague since what happened at
the hotel.
Nothing even happened. I’m a teenage boy and she’s a beautiful fucking
woman who told me to zip her dress down. That’s it. Okay, so I might have
kept my hands on her longer than I needed to but how could I resist? That
dress was perfect and I’ve not felt the touch of a woman in way too long. I
need to get myself in check because I can’t have Wren looking at me like
she hates me all night.
I drive to her apartment to pick her and the girls up. One thing I wish I
knew about Wren before we agreed to do this is how long it takes her to get
ready. She texted me nearly three hours ago saying that she’s starting to get
dressed after being at the rink all day. Still, I’ve been sitting in the parking
lot for almost twenty minutes before she finally materialises through the
doors of the apartment complex.
She’s dressed in blue denim shorts and a blue NU sweatshirt; a brave
choice in this Utah climate. Regardless, she looks insanely hot. The shorts
are giving me a great view of the long expanse of her legs. Her hair is down
which is rare but it’s my favourite look on her. I barely even register that
she’s in the car until her seatbelt clicks in and she turns to me.
“Are Kennedy and Scarlett not coming?” I ask, looking past her into the
darkness of the parking lot.
She shakes her head. “They’ll meet us there.”
I nod and put the car into drive, leading us out onto the main road which
leads us to the secluded field where the Drive-In is being held. Wren’s
doing that freaky thing where she’s humming along to the song I put on
while still managing to look and sound angry at the same time. I turn down
‘Freakin’ Out On the interstate’ by Briston Maroney slightly when we get to
stop light, turning to her.
“What’s wrong?” I ask while she stares straight ahead.
She turns the song back up. “Nothing.”
I turn it down. “Something’s clearly wrong. We don’t have to go if you
don’t want to.”
She turns it up. “I didn’t say I don’t want to go.”
I turn it back down. “Well, you’re acting like it.”
She turns is up again. Louder. “I’m turning it up so you don’t hear how
pathetic I sound,” she says over the music. I don’t tell her that I can hear
what she’s saying perfectly fine if this makes her more comfortable. “Me
and the girls had a fight and we hardly ever fight. It was about you.”
Immediately, I smile, turning to her as the traffic starts to move along.
“Okay, it wasn’t about you. It was more about us. They don’t think I’m
trying hard enough to make this work and the fact that we have a deadline
on this thing only makes it worse. And I’m worried that we’re not doing
enough for people to actually take an interest in skating again.”
I sigh, my shoulders dropping. “Wren. We just started with this whole
thing. You need to be patient because if you keep trying to force something
to happen, it’s not going to happen. We’ll take a few pics tonight and the
game next week will surely get more people on board.”
She turns to me and I’m trying my best not to crash the car so I can’t
even look at her gorgeous face. “You promise?”
“Yes, I promise,” I reply. “Now turn down this fucking music before I
burst an eardrum.”
*
As expected, the field is absolutely packed with cars. I’ve only been to a
Drive-In once and it was where I had my first kiss in high school. I don’t
remember much from that day, other than being so fucking nervous. Thank
God I’ve learned a few moves since then. When we get closer to where all
the cars have lined up, I park my truck next to Xaiver’s as he and his
girlfriend Michelle sit on the hood of the car with a bag of popcorn between
them.
I watch Wren scan the surroundings, the same nervousness she showed
at the party. “Are you ready to do some extremely painful socialising?” I
ask, keeping my tone light as I shut off the car and unclip my seatbelt.
“I’m as ready as I’ll ever be,” she murmurs, opening her door. I quickly
round the truck, wanting to tug her into my side as we walk towards
Xaiver’s car. She lets out a noise between a grunt and a sigh when I put my
arm around her shoulders. Well, this is going swimmingly.
“Davis, finally! The movie is about to start,” Xavier says through a
mouthful of popcorn when he spots me and Wren. Michelle shakes her head
at him. I honestly don’t know how she’s put up with him for so long. He
shifts his vision to Wren and his face breaks out into a smile. “And you
must be the famous girlfriend.”
Wren laughs and the sound soothes me. “And you must be the famous
best friend. It’s really nice to meet you.”
“You too,” he says. He nudges Michelle in the shoulder. “This is Mitch,
my girl.”
Michelle laughs. “Literally nobody calls me Mitch other than these two
dorks. ‘Michelle’ is also fine.”
Wren joins in on the laughter, shaking her head at me. We started calling
her Mitch as a joke in middle school and then it just stuck. “It’s nice to meet
you, Michelle.”
“Well, we better set up our camp before the movie actually starts,” I say
to them, looking down at Wren. Michelle and Xaiver nod, digging back into
their food. I turn us around, leading us both to the car.
I set down the back of my truck, opening up the space for us to get
seated comfortably. I could be perfect at this boyfriend shit if this was a real
relationship. I brought blankets, cushions and our own snacks because the
food here is scarily expensive. Wren seems to be impressed too because
when we’re climbing into the truck she doesn’t make any snarky comments.
If I didn’t know any better, I’d say I’m earning some brownie points.
We sit at the edge of the truck, our legs dangling off the edge and our
snacks on either side of us. When I notice Wren shivering, I push myself
closer to her, desperate to give her some of my warmth.
“Are you cold?” I ask.
“I’m fine,” she says. I swear she is the most stubborn person I have ever
met.
“You’re shivering,” I say and I place my hand on her thigh as the
goosebumps arrive across her skin and she gasps. I lean back into the truck,
plucking one of the blankets and draping it over both of our legs. “There,” I
murmur, almost to myself as I spread it out over us. The last thing I expect
her to do is to latch onto my hand.
I look at our interlocked fingers; her small hand in my big one. She does
that thing girls do that drives me fucking insane as she circles her thumb on
my hand, pulling both of her hands into her lap. Under the blanket. The
thumb thing and the fact that my warm skin is touching her bare thighs is
driving me equal parts angry and horny.
Fucking hell.
I need to get laid.
“Are you going to do that all night?” I ask when I’m struggling to even
breathe properly.
“Do what?” she asks innocently, turning her head to the side as the glow
from the large screen glitters in her brown eyes.
“You know exactly what you’re doing, Wren.” She still hasn’t stopped
moving her thumb over my hand and she tortures me more by hooking her
right leg over my left one, letting our hands rest on the inside of her thigh.
Then I look back up at her but she’s trying to seem focused on the
screen as she whispers out the side of my mouth, “Michelle is staring at us
and I’m pretty sure half of NU’s population is here. The least we can do is
look cosy.”
“Yeah,” I say, “Right.”
Because this is fake. Everything about this is pretend. It’s hard to feel
like it’s pretend when she’s this fucking close to me and every nerve in my
body is being set on fire one by one. She doesn’t even flinch when the first
jumpscare appears. She must be superhuman because I’m latching onto her
like a baby. This movie has no business being this terrifying. She does
flinch when Kennedy and Scarlett appear out of nowhere.
They both stand in front of us, blocking our view from the screen.
Scarlett looks pissed and Kennedy seems like she’s more interested in
wanting to watch the movie than she is about confronting Wren on
whatever they’ve argued about. I think this is my signal to leave.
“I’m going to get us some food with Z,” I say, detangling myself from
her grip and the covers. “I’ll let you guys...chat.”
Wren gives me one of her death stares but I don’t want to be caught in
the middle of a cat fight so I can make up for that later. Instead, I rush over
to Xaiver’s car and haul him from his seat, needing someone to talk to while
I get out of whatever Wren has got herself into. We get into the long queue
for refreshments and Zaiver nudges my shoulder.
“You two are looking cosy. How are things going?” he asks.
“Cosy. That’s exactly what we need to look like,” I reply, kicking the
stones beneath my feet.
“You sound pissed, dude,” Xaiver laughs. “Which is saying something
because you’re not actually dating her so you shouldn’t be pissed. Do you
like her for real?”
“No. God. I just didn’t realise how hard it would be to fake date
someone like her,” I admit, sighing as I look up at the pitch black sky,
littered with stars.
“What does that mean?”
I turn around and look for our car and I spot her. She must have made
up with Kennedy and Scarlett because I can see them in the back of my
truck too, talking animatedly to each other. Girls are weird in that way. One
minute they can’t stand each other and the next, they’re best friends again.
Xavier turns around too. Wren’s laughing with them, double tucking her
hair back behind her ear like it’s a movie.
“I mean, fucking look at her, Z. I knew that she was pretty. I knew that
the second I laid eyes on her but actually getting to know her - you know,
for the contract - has changed every single thing about her. And I swear, if
she touches me one more time tonight, I don’t know what I’m going to do.”
Getting that out feels good. I know I shouldn't act out on any of the
impulses I have but the attraction that I have to her and her brain is driving
me insane.
“You’re already in too deep, man. Just get through the next few weeks
and if her show goes well, you don’t have to keep doing it anymore, right?”
Z asks. I nod. “Then, you can get laid and not have to worry about it
messing up your plan.”
I nod again, taking in that idea. I can do that. I need to be able to do
that. “Yeah. You’re right.”
We turn back around and move further down the queue. When we
finally get to ordering, Xavier buys a drink for him and Michelle and I order
some M&M’s. When we get back to our cars, even more people have
gathered around my truck. Grey and Harry are both there and Michelle has
moved from Z’s car into the back of mine, talking away with the girls.
This is great.
“Miles! Fancy seeing you here,” Grey drawls, holding his hands out
wide as if we didn’t all text in the team group chat before arriving. He said
he was going to try his luck with one of the netball girls. What he didn’t say
was how he was going to take up all the space in my car. “We thought you
abandoned your girl, here.”
I look down to Wren and she’s laughing, clearly warmed up to my
friends. “Yeah, babe. What took you so long?” she asks, painting on that
innocently adorable face of hers as she snuggles between Kennedy and
Scarlett.
“Well, I wouldn’t have taken so long if I knew you guys were all ready
to take over my car,” I reply sarcastically, seriously looking for a place to
sit. “I swear I saw Kennedy’s car over there.”
I look out into the space where Ken’s parked.“The vibes are better over
here,” she says cheerfully, dismissing me with a shrug.
I turn to Grey and Harry who are taking up the edge of the truck. “And
what’s your excuse?”
“The vibes are better over here,” Harry mocks and Kennedy shoots him
a look. “Oh, so it works for her but not for us?" This time I shoot him a
look. "We got an Uber here.”
“Great. Now I’ve got nowhere to sit,” I murmur, trying to figure out
how they’ve all managed to fit in the car.
“Don’t get your panties in a bunch, Milesy,” Wren says, standing up to
step over everyone until she’s beside me looking at the truck. “A little
rearranging and we should be fine.
After everyone steps out the back of the truck, we try to get everyone
into a comfortable position. Michelle and Zaiver take the far back of the
truck, snuggled up into the far corner. Kennedy sits in front of them with
Scarlett in front of her, her legs dangling out of the back. Grey sits next to
Scarlett on the front with Harry behind him, in front of me and Wren. Of
course Wren and I are in the worst position ever. Not because we barely see
the movie but because Wren is sitting right in my lap.
“You’ve got to be shitting me,” I murmur when Wren tries to make
herself comfortable in my lap which means she’s brushing her ass all over
my dick.
“What?” she asks, turning to look at me.
“I said you look so pretty,” I bite out and she narrows her eyes at me
before turning around.
I can’t even focus on the movie. It’s not even scary at this point.
Because what’s scarier is the fact that when Wren goes to speak to Kennedy
and Scarlett, she leans forward a little, making me wrap my arms around
her stomach so she doesn’t fall as her ass grinds into mine. No one else
seems to notice the amount of pain I’m in as they all shield themselves from
the movie.
“Can you keep still? You're making it worse,” I whisper just for her to
hear. I can tell my breath is hot against her neck because she shivers, her
back slightly arching into my front.
“This isn't comfortable for me either, Davis,” she murmurs, turning
around so our faces millimetres apart. Her dark eyes pin mine as she says,
“Especially with your dick jabbing into my ass.”
Right. So it is that obvious.
I do what I do best.
Deny, deny, deny.
“It's a biological reaction, Wren. Don't get too excited.”
“Right,” she says with a mocking tone. And then - because she’s a
fucking sadist - she grinds herself against me on purpose and I groan. “This
is all just biological, right? That's why your heart is racing and you're
gripping onto my stomach like it's the only thing keeping you alive.
Biology.”
“It's a scary movie.”
She laughs quietly. “You can think of all the excuses that you want,
Davis. But that doesn’t change the fact that you're hard and I’m turning you
on without doing anything.”
Yeah….no.
I’m not doing this.
I’m not letting my fake girlfriend make me feel like my balls are about
to fall off if she doesn’t do anything about it. Because she can't do anything
about it. We’re meant to be friends, first and foremost. And from what I’ve
seen in other relationships with my friends, friends don’t almost bring the
other to orgasm in the back of a truck simply by grinding their ass against
the other.
I stand up abruptly and everyone’s heads turn around and they all sigh
when they realise it’s me and not one of the tethered from the movie.
“What are you doing?” Wren whisper-shouts. I start to step over them as
I try to get out.
“I need to pee.”
Am I really running away from my problems like a child? Yes. But it’s
better than sitting there and letting her torture me. Still, I can’t seem to get
away from her because I barely make it more than twenty steps away from
the car before she’s behind me.
“Miles,” she presses but I keep on walking. “Miles,” she says again.
“What the hell is wrong with you?”
That makes me stop in my tracks and I turn around. Her hands are out at
her sides, clearly annoyed at me. “What’s wrong with me?” I snap. “What’s
wrong with you, Wren? You say you want this to work because you’re
scared of running out of time then you pull shit like that when you know
you don’t need to and then you have the nerve to ask what’s wrong with
me? It makes no fucking sense.”
“I wasn’t doing it on purpose,” she challenges, her tone biting.
“Oh, so you weren’t purposefully moving against me like that just
then?”
“Okay, the last time I was doing it on purpose but it was a joke.”
I step closer to her. “But it’s not a joke, Wren. This is our future you're
playing with here. You’re the one who is so worried about messing this up
and you can’t do shit like that. You can’t ask me to zip down your dresses
or grind against my lap. You can’t wear shorts and you can’t wear your hair
down because-”
“You’re not telling me what to wear, Davis,” she says, defensively.
“Fake boyfriend or not. You’re not controlling how I look.”
“You’re right. I’m sorry. That’s a me problem and it’s unfair of me but-”
I get cut off by the strange smile that has formed against her mouth. “Why
are you smiling?”
“Because all of your friends are staring at us and they probably think
we’re fighting,” she says through a toothy smile. Honestly, this woman
scares me. She steps closer to me, tugging on my sweatshirt.
“So we’re not fighting…?”
She shakes her head. “Just shut up and kiss me.”
“What?” I breathe out.
She grins. “You heard me. Pucker up, big boy.”
“You're insane,” I say, laughing. “Are they really there or do you just
want to kiss me that badly, Hacks?”
“I dont think I’m the one who wants this badly, Milesy,” she says,
making a very suggestive nod to my hard-on. “It’s concerning how you’re
turned on even when we're fighting.”
Fuck it.
I don't need any other reason to kiss her.
I let her pull me in, letting her take the lead on this one since I was the
one who initiated the kiss at the gala. She slowly rises to her tiptoes, her
sweet perfume slowly reaching my brain as she gently brushes her nose
against mine. I’m practically panting, waiting for her to turn her head and
reach my mouth. Of course she does the unimaginable and kisses my
bottom lip before pulling on it with her teeth. My eyes flutter closed for a
second but I force them to stay open and I catch the smug smile that has
spread across her face.
She finally does what I’ve been waiting for but the moment is all too
fleeting as the kiss is just that; a kiss. It lasts maybe three seconds before
she pulls back, leaving me wanting more and more and more.
“Now that we’ve kissed and made up, turn your frown upside down and
look like that was the best kiss of your life,” she demands, linking her
fingers within mine, turning us towards the car again.
*
We manage to make through the rest of the movie with no more slip
ups. She keeps still on my lap and when she holds my hand again, she
doesn’t do that thumb thing that makes me want to kiss her again.
I touched her for too long at the gala and she got payback. That's all it
is. Now we're even and we can make sure this stays pretend.
Rule. Number. Three.
When I drive her back to her apartment, we barely say anything as this
strange energy crackles between us and I can’t bear the tension anymore so
I grab her arm before she tries to leave. She turns to me, a funny look on her
face and I loosen my grip.
“We’re going to be fine. You know that, right?”
“If you say so, Davis,” she says sarcastically.
“Can you drop the act for one fucking minute and be real with me,” I
say, trying not be frustrated. “When you stress out, you stress me out. So
please, know that it’s going to be okay. I need you to know that I’ve got
you. That you can trust me.”
I watch the exact second that her face relaxes. She needed to hear this as
much as I needed to say it. “I trust you. I do. But it’s just scary. You know,
if this doesn’t work.”
“But it will. If you let me try for you, it’s going to work.”
“Okay,” she sighs.
“Okay?”
“Okay,” she says again, rolling her eyes. “Thank you for today. I’ll
remember not to wear shorts next time. Oh, or leave my hair down. Or do
anything that could possibly drive you crazy.”
“That will be the last time I ever tell you anything, Wrenny,” I say,
laughing. She flips me off before hopping out of the car and walking up to
her apartment.
I take it back.
I don’t think dating Wren Hackerly is the best thing to happen to me.
It’s going to be the thing that destroys me.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 18
miles
After having to snuggle up next to Wren at the Drive-in and our kiss,
I’m praying that in some way, this hockey game will give me more reasons
to touch her in public. I know it's pathetic but touching her is like a drug.
Once I've had one hit, I just want more. And more. And more. Until I can't
anymore.
I’m putting on my jacket, ready to leave when my phone lights up with
a text. It’s Wren.
She’s been freaking out over this for the last week, obsessing over an
outfit. Hockey games at NU are the highlight of the week. We always get a
full house even when the games are just friendly. Everyone loves the
atmosphere, the rush and the energy that radiates off the players. I can’t
wait to get myself back out there. As Coach doesn’t forget to remind us ‘It's
what you do before the season starts that makes a champion.’
Coach has been checking in to see how I’m doing, and he told me that
he’ll let me know as soon as he thinks I’m ready to play again. Wren has
been easing me into getting back on the ice in my full gear but it’s a lot
harder than I thought. Each time I step out there and I see the nets, I freeze
up. I’m going to have to get there eventually. I'm going to need to put in
Wren's dad's advice about playing when I finally get back onto the ice.
I need to.
For carter.
I drive the distance from my house to Wren’s apartment in a few
minutes, trying not to miss the start of the game. I can only hope that if I
drive, it can give us an excuse to go somewhere afterwards instead of
driving straight home. I get to her door and knock twice before Kennedy
opens it. A wide grin splits on her face and she lets me in.
“She’s through there,” she says pointing down the hallway. I look down
the hall and then back to her. “When you hear frustrated groans, you’ll
know which one it is.”
I wait for a second before following her directions. I don’t know why
I’m so anxious to go to her room. I’ve spent a few nights here, as part of our
contract to take late night photos but I’ve only ventured in the living room,
the kitchen, and the bathroom. I usually come over late, after she’s finished
practice and we hang out for a bit and take a few photos. I pull out the
couch and I go to bed. It’s that easy. Most times, she’s gone to practice
before I wake up. Sure enough, I hear frustrated grunts coming from one of
the rooms and I knock on the door.
“Wren?” I ask wearily. “It’s me. Miles.”
“Yes, I know what your voice sounds like Milesy,” she sighs
sarcastically. “Open the door.”
Entering her room is like looking straight into her brain. A chaotic,
beautiful mess.
The white walls are covered in music posters, figure skating posters and
pictures of her and her friends. A shelf is covered from top to bottom in
trophies, medals, and certificates. I don’t know why I’m surprised because I
knew she was good but fuck. There is almost not room for anything else on
the shelves.
A dressing table in the corner holds a vinyl player and a stack of Taylor
Swift records next to it. And best of all, Wren is sat in the middle of the
floor, surrounded by thousands of clothes in a sports bra and leggings. She
looks up at me and her face drops in exhaustion.
“You’re going to have to leave me here. I’m not going,” she groans
melodramatically. I crouch down in front of her and tilt my head to the side.
“Yeah, you are. I got you a present,” I say cheerfully, holding out my
cap and my NU Bear’s hockey number seven jersey. She looks at them and
then at me.
“Do you know how tacky it is for me to wear your jersey?”
“Well, who else’s jersey would you wear? If you’re gonna wear a jersey
it needs to have my name and number on it. I’m not let anyone else thinking
you’re someone else’s,” I challenge. Okay, maybe I do have a jealous side.
Her mouth tilts into a grin, probably considering teasing me on it but I
speak before she can. “Plus, it makes you look like you care and that we’re
in a committed relationship.”
She groans before grabbing my shirt out of my hand and standing up out
of her heap. She pulls she shirt over her head and looks in her full-length
mirror. Naturally, the jersey hangs loose on her and falls halfway down her
thighs. I stand behind her and put my hands on her shoulders. Wren looks at
herself in the mirror, slightly unimpressed.
I love that she has my name written on her back. Believe it or not, I
have never given another girl my jersey. Emily was never bothered but with
other people I've dated, they get so territorial about it but I don't have to
worry about it with her.
“See, you look fabulous,” I gush, smiling. She shakes her head and
turns to me, my hands still on her shoulders.
“I look like I’m dating a hockey player,” she says before a horrified
expression takes over her face. “Oh my God. I’m dating a hockey player.”
I laugh hard while her jaw hangs open. I put my cap on her head and tap
it. Her nose scrunches as I put two fingers under her jaw and close her
mouth. “Yep, but we’re going to be late.”
“Why are you so worried about being late? You’re not even playing.”
“I know but it’s not the worst thing to be on time,” I retort. “You’re the
one who likes to take hours to get ready.”
She huffs and we walk out of her room. Before we get to the door, we’re
stopped by Kennedy and Scarlett, both with their mouths on the floor.
Kennedy — like always — is dressed in denim dungarees with embroidered
flowers on it as if she’s a preschool teacher. Scarlett is in black jeans and a
pink tank top, cautiously walking closer to Wren.
“Amelia Wren Hackerly. Respectfully - what the fuck is this?” Scarlett
says dramatically, motioning to Wren’s outfit.
“I am speechless. Like, no words,” Kennedy exclaims.
“I know. Desperate times call for desperate measures,” Wren sulks,
grabbing my hand, pulling us past them. “We better go before someone gets
grumpy.”
*
The locker room is loud and chaotic when I walk in. Most of the guys
are still in their jerseys, spraying water around as they whoop and yell.
There is no better feeling than winning a game alongside your best friends.
When they see me, they start cheering even louder.
“Look who decided to show up,” Harry announces, gesturing towards
me, looking out of place in my jeans and hoodie.
“You guys did good. Could have been better if I was there though,” I
laugh. Tyler Vaughan stalks towards me, patting me on the back.
“No need to get cocky, dude. You need to get back out there. This
season is going to be a nightmare without you,” they say, rolling their eyes
at the rest of the team before slipping away into the showers.
“It’s up to Coach. I’m still training and getting my head back in the
game. Coach just needs to give me the all-clear,” I reply shrugging. All of
the team nod in agreement, understanding why I haven’t been in the best
shape.
Then Jake starts laughing hysterically from the corner of the room. Who
the fuck does he think this is? Is he a villain in a kid's movie? Everyone’s
heads to turn to him as he makes himself the centre of attention. Like
always.
Jake and I were good friends in first year. We both got onto the team
and like all my other teammates, we bonded instantly. Carter was never
really a fan of him. He always thought Jake was too much for the team. Too
much chaotic energy and not in a good way. He always took things a step
too far, especially during prank week. Then he started dating anyone he
could get his hands on. He dated Scarlett which didn’t last very long when
he cheated on her. Considering who her family are, he’s lucky he got away
without a scratch. He’s a good player which is the only reason anyone on
this team tolerates him.
“Are you, Davis? Because I haven’t seen you on the ice in over four
months,” he drawls, coming closer to me. I swallow, suddenly feeling rage
and nausea at the same time.
“Dude, calm down. No one has been feeling it since Carter died,
especially Miles. They were practically brothers. Give it a rest,” Xavier cuts
in, coming to my rescue.
“Don’t give me that dead friend bullshit. If Davis wanted to play, he
would have by now. Instead, he’s too busy flaunting around with his
girlfriend,” he says, moving closer in my face. I take a breath in, trying to
calm myself down. “What’s her name? Wren? Hacks’ kid?”
“Keep her name out of your mouth, Callahan,” I bite out, my fists
clenching and unclenching at my sides. I feel bile rising in my throat, but I
swallow it. I’ve never felt this kind of anger and exhaustion all at the same
time. I hate the way it makes my pulse quicken and my jaw clench.
“Or what? You going to go crying to Coach about it? Grow the fuck up,
Miles. If you ever want to play in the NHL, you’re going to have to stop
moping over Carter and stop drooling over that whore. If you’re not careful,
she might follow in her friend’s footsteps.”
I get closer to him, our faces inches apart.
“Talk about her, or her friends, again and see what happens.” I growl.
An evil smile spreads across his face slowly. “I swear to God, Callahan, if
you so much as breathe near her, I’ll crack your fucking head open.”
“Oh, shit,” he laughs. “Does she really fuck that good, Davis?”
I bite my tongue so hard that it almost bleeds. I take a deep breath in
before turning around. I can do this. I can take the high road. I can walk out
of here and leave him to crawl back into whatever hole he came from. If I
mess up now, I could be off the team for good. I walk close to the door
before I hear him again behind me.
“Yeah, go home and cry to your little slut,” Jake shouts.
I turn back around.
Fuck this.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 19
WREN
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 20
MILES
Take these.
I have to go to practice.
XO
Wren
I take out two of the painkillers and down the glass of water before
wandering in the bathroom. I take a look in the mirror and my bruise isn’t
look as bad as it was last night but it’s still pretty angry looking. I know I
shouldn’t have got in the fight but by the way they were talking about Wren
and Carter made my stomach turn.
After Carter passed, everyone on the team was broken up. It was the
first and last time I saw any of them cry. We talked about him regularly,
keeping his memory alive until one day they all moved but I stayed there.
I stayed waiting for him, looking through photos and trying to will him
back into existence. Sometimes, when we’re all drunk and emotional we’ll
bring him up and toast to him but on a regular day everyone seems to have
forgotten about him. But I can’t.
Every time I got up, it felt like I was dragging my feet through
quicksand, trying and failing to get better. Just sinking back in right where I
started. All the guys have probably had their fair share of sad moments but
sometimes I feel like the only person who’s actively trying to remember
him. But what good is that when I can’t honour him too? Our first match of
the season is in January and if I’m not ready to play by then, I might as well
give up.
Most of the morning goes by in a blur. All I can think about is her. Her
hands in my hair, my hands on her ass and her moaning my name when we
were barley moving against each other. I don’t think I’ve been that turned
on in my life. I knew I was straining between my jeans, and I needed to deal
with it, but I sucked it up and focused on making her feel good.
I haven’t heard from her since she left this morning, but I know she’s
probably skating until her feet are sore. Or maybe she’s avoiding me? We
didn’t speak about what almost happened after the gala so should I be
expecting some sort of response from her after last night?
Sure, we kissed, and it felt fucking amazing but maybe to her that’s all it
was. I was the one who asked her, and she said yes. That’s it.
I don’t have time to overthink it before I hear rapid knocks at my front
door. I rush downstairs to open it and instantly, I wish I hadn’t.
With long brown curly hair and a sheepish smile, my sister stands in the
doorway with her arms across her chest. I blink at her, hoping that she’ll
disappear when I open my eyes but the doors already open and she’s
pushing past me.
“What are you doing here?” I ask, shutting the door behind her. I remind
myself to check through the peephole before answering the door again.
“Miles, me and you need to talk,” she says sternly, shrugging off her
coat and holding in her hands.
“I thought we already did that.”
“No, like, really talk. You can’t keep running away from me. You’re
nineteen. You’re too young to be running away from your problems
already.” She walks further into the house, looking around.
“Fine. Let’s talk,” I grunt. I lead us into the kitchen, and she takes a seat
at the breakfast bar, swinging around to face me as I stand at the other end,
my back against the counter. “Do you want a drink or something?”
She shakes her head. “You should sit down for this.”
I take in a deep breath and sit down next to her. I know I’ve been
running away from her, from my family, because it’s too much deal with on
top of everything. How was I just supposed to move on like everyone else?
The same way everyone moved after Carter died. It’s just not that easy for
me.
“I didn’t tell you about mom because I was trying to protect you,” she
begins. Okay, so we’re going straight into this. Great. “And don’t roll your
eyes before you let me explain.”
“Go ahead,” I say. A huge part of me has wanted to know why. Why I
was the only one who didn’t know. Why everybody was so okay with it.
“I found out about the affair in the worst way possible,” Clara starts, her
fingers tapping on the table. “I was going into the school to surprise mom
for her birthday, like we planned to the week before. I had just started
college and you were still in middle school. I had flowers and chocolates,
and I went in, and she was kissing him. At first, I thought maybe dad had a
new haircut or something but as I got closer, I realised it wasn’t him.”
“So, what did you do?” I ask, my voice sounding smaller than I thought.
I thought the surprise idea we had worked out perfectly. I wouldn't have
expected it to be that moment that she found out. Mom got home from work
like normal and we had dinner together like we always do. Nothing felt off.
“I did what any eighteen-year-old who had just caught their mom
cheating would do. I burst through the door, screaming, crying, and
shouting at her. She told the guy to leave, and she sat me down. She
apologised and told me that it wasn’t dad’s fault, and it wasn’t any of our
faults either.”
“That still doesn’t explain why you didn’t tell me.”
“I didn’t want to, Miles. She told me to. She said that I could tell you if
I wanted and she wouldn’t hold it against me, but I chose not to. I know
how you are, and I couldn’t let it crush you and set you back. You were only
a kid, and I didn’t want you to spend the rest of your life hating her. Not like
I did.”
That makes sense.
I don’t argue.
I don’t make a snarky comment. I just let it sink in. If I found out then, I
would have hated her. I would have held onto it, used it against her in any
way I could, and I still wouldn’t be over it.
When I know something, it consumes me. It becomes all I can think
about and there’s no way of telling when I’d get over it.
“How did you do it? How did you forgive her?”
“Well, it helped that I was at college. If I saw her every day, I don’t
think I would have done it so easily. I just had to let go. I had to move on
with my life. I had goals that were bigger than this setback in my life. At the
beginning I was angry, and I wasn’t sure when I’d stop thinking about it,
but I had to push forward.”
“I don’t know how to do that. How to just let it all go.” I sigh and run
my hands through my hair, defeated.
“I know you don’t, that’s why I couldn’t tell you. Do you remember that
action figure you had? The army one with the interchangeable outfits?” I
nod and she continues. “You had that with you all the time. You had in your
hand in the stroller, you held onto it while you were potty training, and you
brought with you to your first day of kindergarten. It was old and mouldy
by the time you were eight and do you remember what happened when dad
tried to throw it away?”
“I screamed at him and said I’d run away if he didn’t give it me back,” I
say, laughing at the memory. I had almost forgot about that. I was such a
dramatic child. Maybe I still am.
“Because you couldn’t let it go, Miles. You thought it was this precious
thing that you couldn’t live without but when you got a new pair of skates
you forgot about it, and you moved on. That’s why I thought that if I waited
to tell you, you’d be more open to forgiving her. I thought you’d find it
easier to move on,” Clara admits, looking at me sympathetically. I don’t say
anything for a while.
“Do you think that’s why I’m still thinking about Carter? Why I can’t
move on. I feel like everyone has moved on and I can’t,” I ask, my voice
wavering. I only ask to try to make sense of it myself.
“I think… I think that’s a different thing, Miles. Loosing someone is a
very difficult thing and everybody deals with it in different ways. I don’t
think you need to worry about how long it takes you. It’s not something you
can just wake up and move on from.”
“Everyone else has. Clara, I can’t even put on my helmet without
feeling like I’m suffocating,” I say truthfully.
I don’t know when I started crying but I did. Hot tears run down my
face. I don’t bother to hide it. I’ve got used to crying now. At first, I thought
it was something to be embarrassed about. Something that shouldn’t be
happening but then it starting to feel relieving. Cathartic.
“Oh, Miles. I know we haven’t spoken but please tell me you’ve been
talking to someone about this.” She brings her hand to my back, rubbing
reassuringly. I sniffle and try to blink back the tears.
“I have Wren,” I say, mostly as a reminder. Because I do, right? Even
though I haven’t heard from her since our kiss, I still have her. I have to.
“That’s good. I’m glad to hear that but who’s Wren?” she asks, her nose
scrunched up.
"She's my girlfriend. She’s just…” I laugh. How could I even begin to
describe her? How could I tell her that she’s completely taken over every
single thought in my brain. That’s she’s the only thing I can think about.
Her stubbornness and all. “She’s everything.”
Clara nods in understanding. “We’ve got a lot to catch up on.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 21
WREN
Gigi: Why haven’t you posted any pictures with your boyfriend?
Did you guys break up?
Me: We didn’t break up G. It's been twenty-four hours since I
posted.
Me: Any updates on TLT?
Gigi: If you keep up with my posts, then you would know. But, no,
there are no updates yet.
I saw the pictures at the hockey game, how was that?
Me: It was actually fun. I think you would have enjoyed it.
Gigi: I’m sure I would have. There is nothing I love more than
crowded spaces.
Me: Ha-ha. So...
Me: That means that you're not coming to my show?
Gigi: No, Emmy, I can't. I’m trying to get better with crowds, I
promise.
Me: I know you are, G. Love you more than Marcus loves
Carmen.
Gigi: I don’t think that’s possible. You wrote their love to be
extremely powerful. Also, you couldn’t love me the same way
because they’re in a romantic relationship.
Me: Would it kill you to say that you love me too?
Gigi: It wouldn’t kill me; I just don’t want to say it.
I laugh at Gigi’s last message and throw it next to me. The second it hits
the cushion it starts to ring again. When I reach for it, I see the unknown
caller ID, my pulse instinctively quickening. I swipe the answer button and
bring the phone to my ear.
“Hello?”
“Wren? It’s Austin. Are you alone?”
My chest tightens at the sound of her voice. It’s been so long that I
almost forgot what she sounds like. We've had a few calls over the last few
years but nothing anything to remember. She’s always busy so it’s always a
quick ‘Hi, how are you?’ on her way into the studio. I've always wanted a
better relationship with my sister. She does her thing and I do mine. It's that
simple.
Goosebumps immediately spread over my skin as my heart races.
“Is it your lover boy calling for phone sex?” Kennedy coos.
“No. It’s Austin,” I say, the words sounding foreign coming out of my
mouth.
They both turn to me in horror as I pick up my ice packs and limp into
my bedroom, closing the door. My hands shake as I sit down on the edge of
the bed. “I’m alone. What’s wrong? No one has heard from you in months.
Are you okay?”
“My life is over. My career is over. I won’t be able to dance anymore,”
Austin says quickly.
“What? Are you hurt? What happened?”
“Worse,” she replies.
“Austin, what could be worse than that?” A huge part of me doesn’t
even want to know the answer. Austin is a lot less dramatic than my mom.
She’s always been the rational one but with the complete terror in her voice,
I don’t think I want to know.
“I’m pregnant.”
The line goes strangely silent. Austin has never wanted kids. It’s not
that she doesn’t like them. How can you hate a baby? But Austin’s life plans
were very simple. Ballet. Get married. Ballet. Even as kids when asked
what she wanted to do it was always ‘ballet’ with certainty and ‘marriage’
with a question mark.
She has done everything in her power to make sure that one plan stays
consistent and that it actually follows through. In a way, I have a very
similar to plan. Although, if I ever got pregnant it would be more of a
miracle not to skate than a drawback.
She’s been dating Zion for as long as I can remember, and they’ve made
it work between her schedule and his job as a book editor. I knew they were
serious when he moved away with her to Russia a few years ago but this
was clearly not in their five-year plan.
“How far along are you?” I ask when I get my voice back.
“Too far. Maybe four months?” I don’t say anything. What am I
supposed to say to this? “Emmy, I can’t do this right now. This was
supposed to be my last month here and then I was meant to move to France
in the new year with just Zion - not him and a baby.”
“Wait, you got into the company?”
“Why are you so surprised? I worked hard and I got in,” she says
bluntly. Right. I forgot how uptight she was. “They won’t want me anymore
if they find out that I can’t dance for at least a year.”
“What are you going to do?”
“I’m going to figure that out. I was calling for a favour mostly,” Austin
says cautiously.
“Sure. What is it?” I ask, half of me afraid for the answer.
“Can you tell mom for me? I won’t be able to stomach the
disappointment. I’ve told dad already, but you know what he’s like. He was
just happy that there’s a possibility he could get a grandson,” she laughs
quietly.
“Austin, I don’t know if I can do that,” I stutter. “I don’t want all that
pressure on me right now. I’ve got a show coming up.”
“Great. That’s perfect,” she says, and I wait, not knowing where she’s
going with this. “Just tell her right after the show, when you’ve done your
best performance and she’ll be so proud she probably won’t even care.”
I wait a minute, not saying anything. My future in figure skating at NU
is riding on the back of this showcase. Not only do I need people to turn up,
but my mom needs to enjoy it. She needs to see that I’ve put my blood,
sweat and tears into my practicing. And now, she needs to be prouder than
ever so Austin’s pregnancy can fly right over her head. If not, this could end
badly for the both of us.
“Thank you, Wren. I owe you for this one,” she says quickly without
my reply before ending the call. I sit on my bed for what feels like hours,
dumbfounded and my body suddenly feeling heavy.
When the anxieties creep up into me, I rush into my bathroom, and I
throw up. When I’m scared and anxious this happens. A lot more than I’d
like to admit. When the retching doesn’t stop, both of the girls run into my
bathroom. Kennedy holds my hair back while Scarlett rubs my back, not
saying much. After I feel like it’s all out of me, I go to my sink and brush
my teeth, the both of them still in my bathroom, looking concerned.
“I’m, uh, I’m going to the rink,” I say, when I turn around to them, my
voice suddenly not sounding like my own.
Scarlett inches towards me.
“Wren, it’s past nine o’clock. I don’t think the one on campus is open,”
she says.
I brush past her and go into my bedroom. They follow behind me.
“And not to mention you’ve been there all day. Take a break,” Kennedy
suggests as I pack my duffel bag with my leotard and essentials.
“I’ll find one that’s open,” I bite out and I walk out of my room into the
kitchen. They follow behind me again as I grab a couple bottles of water
and I shove them into my bag, avoiding their eyes.
“Wren,” Scarlett says, carefully, shifting from one foot to the other. “I
don’t think this is a good idea. You need to take a breather. You just threw
your stomach up. You were like this before regionals.”
“Yeah and look where that fucking got me. I didn’t take it seriously
enough. I put being with Augustus over skating and I didn’t practice
enough. I could have prevented that. If I fuck this one up, I’m over. I’m
done,” I shout.
They both take a step back, neither one of them knowing what to say.
Kennedy’s eyes soften as she looks at me. Scarlett looks irritated and a little
disappointed. She’s had to put up with side of me for the longest time. She’s
seen me after losing a comp as a kid, she’s seen me after winning and still
needing to do better. Constantly trying to do my absolute best. To be
flawless.
“Look,” I sigh, my voice quieter. “I’m sorry for shouting but I’m in a
really difficult situation right now and I need to clear my head.”
“Then talk to us. That’s what we’re here for,” Kennedy whispers, her
voice weighty with emotion. "You don't run away when things get hard. We
don't do that."
I want to grab them both into a hug. I want to tell them everything. I
want to tell them how it feels like I'm constantly being held down by a
giant, cutting off my blood circulation. How I'm constantly hearing the
words You're not good enough over and over.
“I can’t. I’m sorry. I can't,” I stammer as I slip out of the door.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 22
MILES
Since the night of the game, I’ve hardly seen Wren. We’ve been to the
gym like usual and hanging out on campus but she’s not fully there. Even
while we’re together, I do most of the taking while she nods and mm
hmm’s. It’s like only a part of her is there. The part that was there in the
beginning but without the sarcastic comments. Instead, I get concentrated
looks and two-word answers. I thought we grew out of that. Even when I
make my hilarious gym jokes, she just ignores them.
“Why did the cheese go to the gym?” I said once while I caught my
breath, stood over her while she did sit ups.
“Why?” she asked with a bored expression, not even a waver in her
voice even after doing fifty sit ups.
“Because he wanted to cheddar a couple pounds,” I replied. She just
blinked up at me, not even a crack of a smile on her face. I remember when
these kinds of jokes would earn me a toothy grin and a kick in the stomach.
Now, she doesn’t even care. Or even pretend to care. She stood up and
looked at me.
“Can you spot me on the bench press?” she asked. She barley looked at
me for the rest of the day.
I’m beginning to think that the kiss was a bad idea. Sure, in the moment
we both wanted it. Badly. She was really fucking enthusiastic about it when
she was moaning my name. Since then, in all the posts we’ve put online,
she’s asked me to cover her face because she looks too tired. Even when we
walk around campus between classes, she keeps a baseball cap over her
head. Even though to me, she still looks beautiful. I know she’s probably
stressed about the showcase, but I didn’t expect her to be this distant with
me.
I just want her to talk to me. To let me in.
She told me that this is what she does. That she always holds people at
arm's length. I believed that when I first met her. I knew she was going to
be closed off and I knew I had to work for her to let me in. But I thought
that after a while, after we got so comfortable with each other, that wall
would crumble. It turns out that wall just been put up stronger than before.
After speaking with Clara, I’ve felt lighter. I still haven’t made the brave
decision of calling my mom yet but I’m getting there. I’ve gotten used to
watching videos of Carter and hearing his voice without feeling my
stomach turn. I’ve also been out in the hockey rink with my gear on.
Getting used to being on the ice again has been a difficult adjustment but
I’m slowly getting there. And I can’t remember the last time I’ve had
anything stronger than a Stella.
I got a phone call yesterday from Coach, asking me to meet him this
morning. He knows about the fight. He has to. Someone must have told
him, and this could be the start of the end. I could lose my scholarship and
I’d have to move back home and start community college and get my old
job back.
I walk the distance from my house to the sports centre to clear my head.
I hear the grunts and groans from the figure skating rink, but I tell myself
not to look. If I look now, I’ll go to her and mess up her practice and send
myself into a procrastination spiral which is the last thing either of us need
right now.
I get to Coach Tuckers office and the door's already open. His office is
more like a closet filled top to bottom with sports equipment. There are tons
of equipment for sports that he doesn’t even coach and certificates and
medals hung on the walls. His desk is piled high with paperwork and
folders but when they’re cleared it’s easy to see the pictures that he has on
his desk. His most famous photo of him, his husband and their three Corgi’s
which he tells us was the day he found out he got the job at North.
When I go in, I’m greeted with a smile, and he gestures towards the seat
in front of him. I can’t read his face just yet. I can’t tell if that’s a good thing
or not.
“Miles, I’m sure you know why you’re here,” begins, strangely
cheerfully. He leans his forearms on the table, his eyebrows knitted together
in a serious expression.
“Uh, I think so,” I reply cautiously. He lets his expression drop and he
sighs deeply.
“I heard about what happened after the game. More like, I saw what
happened. Harry showed me a video and I heard about Jake said to you. I’d
like to say that I’m sorry he said that,” Coach says, and I shrug, not wanting
to relive that moment. “I understand why you did it but I’m still
disappointed.”
“If you’re going to kick me off the team for good, can you just say it?”
He laughs, shaking his head.
“Miles, I’m not kicking you off the team. You think I haven't seen you
throw a few punches at other players during the games? These things
happen and neither of you reported it or were badly injured. As long as you
and Jake are cool with each other, I want you to play our first game of the
season. You’ve proved that you’re in a better place apart from that mishap
and your grades have improved a too.”
“Really?” I exclaim, not able to contain the excitement in my voice.
Coach smiles wide, nodding. “You’re not going to regret this, Coach. Thank
you.”
“It’s fine, Davis. I still want you to practice over the holidays to prepare.
If you need someone to talk to, you know, about Carter… I’m here.”
“I know,” I say before pulling back my chair and thanking him again.
I have the biggest smile on my face when I walk around to the rink
Wren is skating on. I know I shouldn’t but I’m too excited to not tell her
right now. Sure enough, she’s in the middle of spinning with her foot high
above her head in a black leotard. She skates forwards before doing a triple
turn in the air and landing wobbly.
“Fuck me,” she groans loudly, and she begins again.
“I’ve got good news,” I announce. She stops abruptly and stares at me
for a long second before floating over to me. She stands at the railing, her
face red and puffy. “I got back on the team.”
Wren’s face lights up and her smile widens. “That’s great, Miles. That’s
really good, honestly. That’s great.”
“Yeah, you said that twice,” I laugh, shifting from one foot to the other.
“But it’s all thanks to you. So, thank you.”
“You don’t have to thank me. You’re the one who put the work in.”
I shrug, grinning and we stay silent for a while. She looks at my face in
a curious way as if this is the first time and she’s trying to figure me out.
Her eyes land on my lips, and they hover there for a beat. Her tongue runs
against her bottom lip before shaking her head softly.
“How’s practicing going?” I ask, trying to cut out the tension.
“It’s good. Could be better,” she replies, waving her hands in defeat. “I
do need to get back to it, though.” She nods her head towards the empty
rink.
“Sure," I say. "Also, I'm doing that interview with Sophia soon and I'd
love for you to come. It could drum up some support for us. Plus, you
deserve a break."
She sighs, chewing her bottom lip. "Fine."
My face cracks into a smie. "That's my girl."
I try not to take what she said personally when I get home but there’s a
feeling in my chest that I can’t ignore. I know she needs to practice,
especially with all the pressure that her mom puts on her, but something
feels off.
Maybe it’s because I’ve never seen her like this before and I’m slowly
getting attached to her. This is the first time I’ve been around another
person who plays a sport that they’ve dedicated their lives to. This
showcase is so important to her. If this goes badly then she might not be
able to skate again.
I’ve told her before that it would be fine if she did. If she did something
else. But she pushed the idea away. She pushed me away. “It’s all or
nothing, Miles,” she said once. I believe that she puts her all into everything
she does even just in practices, but she can’t see it. She only notices the tiny
flaws and the unnoticeable mistakes.
Sometimes, people think she's mean or insane. I think she's fucking
brilliant.
I just wish she could see herself the way I see her.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 23
MILES
I'm trying my best to convince myself that Wren and I are fine. I’m
back on the team, even though I haven’t played my first game yet, and
Wren’s showcase is coming up. She’s been training like an insane person so
that’s why it took a lot of convincing for her to come along to this interview
at Sophia’s house.
I’ve been friends with Sophia for as long as I can remember and she has
been in her, what she calls, ‘influencer era’ for years. Becoming the leader
of the NU Press has given her the perfect opportunity to make her dreams
real. She gets to interview students from different subjects and by the end of
our fourth year, she’s aiming to create a huge graduation video to show
everyone. Since the hockey season is about to start, she’s coming around
our team to interview everyone. The only thing about Sophia and this
project is that she’s kept it very secret. We’ve had mini interviews before
that she posts on Instagram and TikTok but since this is her big project,
we’re interviewed and won’t get to see it until it’s completed.
She sets up her house into a comfortable interviewing space and the
team and usually their other friends and partners join us so we can hang out
afterwards. I know Wren’s not going to enjoy the whole socialising aspect
of today so I try and get us there early.
We’re now driving towards Sophia’s house and Wren isn’t doing that
angry humming thing. Instead, she’s silent, no doubt in her head about the
showcase. Which is even more concerning because Taylor Swift is playing.
I turn up ‘New Romantics’ and her face doesn’t even crack.
“Hey, can I ask you a question?” I ask.
“If I say no, are you going to ask me anyway?” she retorts. I glance at
her and catch her playing with one of her french braids.
“Yes,” I say. “What would be the first thing you’d do if you won the
lottery?”
She laughs a little, the sound rushing through me like a gentle wave.
“These questions are getting more and more random,” she says, but I shoot
her a glance to continue. “I’d buy me and the girls a house where we could
each have our own wing and then order as much pizza as possible.”
I grin. “Not even a salad? Wren, you animal.”
She laughs agai. “If I’ve won the lottery then I wouldn’t skate
professionally. Just for fun. So I wouldn’t need to watch what I eat.”
“Do you want to skate professionally? Like, the Olympics and all that.”
She sighs a little. “I don’t see that as my end goal. I don’t know… It’s
hard to explain.”
We get to Sophia’s house and I park on the sidewalk, not wanting to end
this conversation just yet. I turn to her as she stares straight ahead. I can’t
have her pushing me away again. I need to let her know that she can open
up to me and we can actually have real conversations. “Can you try?”
She turns to me now, propping her leg up on the seat to get more
comfortable. “I know everybody who skates at college dreams of competing
on Team USA but I can’t see myself doing that. I can see myself skating
and when it stops being fun, I’m going to stop. If that’s five years from now
or in five days, I’m not going to force myself to skate. I know it sounds
stupid and it seems like I have no direction but really I’m fine with just-”
“Seeing where life takes you?” I say, finishing her sentence and she
nods, allowing herself to be vulnerable with me. “I get that and you don’t
need to be afraid of admitting that. Not everyone has a five year plan like
Xaiver does about the NHL.”
She nods again, glancing over to the house and then back to me. “Thank
you for understanding that. And I just want to say that I am trying. With
this, I mean. I’ve just got a lot going on right now and it’s hard to get out of
my head sometimes.”
“You can let me into your brain, Wren. I’m never going to judge you.”
“I know that but this is something I need to work on on my own.”
She’s clearly keeping something from me and it’s not just stress about
the showcase. It’s something more that she isn’t telling me but I don't push
her on it and scare her away.
“Do you remember what I said at the Drive-In?” I ask. “When you
stress out about this, you stress me out. So please, can you relax for me?
Soph will be able to tell something is wrong and your show is coming up.”
She unbuckles her seatbelt. “Thanks for the reminder,” she murmurs
and I roll my eyes at her.
Sophia’s house looks even bigger in the daylight. I used to spend most
of my days here when I was nose deep in bourbon. She’s one of the lucky
kids who have always had a close relationship with their parents and have a
childhood home near campus so she never had to move out.
When I get out of my side of the car, I grab Wren’s hand in mine and
she melts into me. We’ve finally got over the first awkwardness of holding
hands in public and after that kiss, we’ve become more comfortable around
each other’s bodies. We step up onto the porch and I pause for a second,
knowing that inside is going to be a hell of hockey players.
“Why are you preparing for this? It’s bound to be a lot worse for me
than it is for you. This is your safe space. The last time I came here I had a
panic attack,” Wren murmurs, tugging on my hand and looking up at me.
Does she have to look so good all the time? Those french braids are doing
absolutely nothing for me and rule number three. “Come on, Milesy. You’re
a big boy, you can handle it.”
I smile and I don’t tell her how difficult it’s going to be to see the whole
team together after the last interview we did all together we did with Carter.
I don’t tell her that it’s going to take everything in me not to rip Jake’s head
off the second I lay eyes on him. Instead, I squeeze her hand tighter in mine
and step up to the door.
With that, the door swings open and the room erupts into cheers and
music blasts from the speakers, no doubt with Grey’s playlist playing. The
entire hockey team is here, crammed into the living room and the hallway
along with a bunch of other random people I’ve never seen before. I know
that the interviews take place in the basement that has been soundproofed so
there’s no wonder why it’s so loud up here. I pull Wren with me through the
crowd until we get to the kitchen, standing on opposite sounds of the island.
“Is it just me or are you getting really vivid deja vu?” I ask,
remembering the night of the party. Wren laughs a little, picking up one of
the waters that are on the island.
“If only you were choking over the sink again,” she drawls, shaking her
head at me. I’m about to make a snarky comment but Xaiver appears, his
arm around Michelle as they sport matching NU Bear’s jerseys. Michelle
writhes out of his grip and pulls Wren into a tight hug. “Michelle! How are
you?”
“I’m fabulous,” Michelle replies, pulling out of the hug and holding
Wren at arms length. “I love your hair like this, Wren. Isn’t it so cute,
Miles?”
“The cutest,” I say, no word of a lie as I watch her face turn a bright
pink. It’s so easy to make her blush and I want to do it all the time. Xavier
stands beside me, smiling, as we watch our girls gush over each other’s
outfits. Well, my fake girl. Because that’s all we are. The more I tell myself
that, the more I start to believe it.
“Those two are going to be best friends. No matter how you guys end
things, you can’t make my girl upset about losing Wren. She’s, like,
obsessed with her,” he says, low enough for only me to hear. Yeah, she’s not
the only one.
“Can I be honest with you guys?” Michelle says, turning towards me
and Xaiver. Wren watches her, clearly unsure about what’s going to come
out of her mouth. “Wren is the best person you’ve dated, Miles.”
Wren laughs, throwing her head back. “You can stop with all the
compliments, Michelle. You don’t have to try and flatter me,” she says,
twisting the end of her braid between her fingers.
Mitch shakes her head. “No. I’m being serious. You bring out the best in
him. I’ve seen him through many stages in his life and this is by far the
happiest. Losing Carter has been hard for all of us but you’ve managed to
make him somewhat happier.”
Wren stands there, frozen. This is what we want. We need people to be
invested in us but this feels like we’re crossing a line somehow. I know
she’s made me a happier person. Even if this is pretend, the way she makes
me feel is so real that it scares me. Not the way that she turns me on or
drives me crazy but the way that she talks to me, listens to me and even
when she’s trying to push me away, she still tries to make an effort.
Before I can respond to try and save this somehow, Sophia’s voice
echoes off the walls. Because she’s one of the most extra people I’ve ever
met, she's managed to connect a microphone to the speakers in the house.
Now, this is an upgrade from last year.
We can’t see her from the kitchen but there’s no doubt that she’s
standing on the table in the living room, making this into a performance.
“Hello, everybody,” Sophia’s voice booms. “I’m so glad so many of you
could make it. If you’ve just arrived, refreshments are everywhere and so is
the food. We’re going to get straight into it and I’m inviting the first five
people into the basement where the group interview will take place.
Afterwards, individual interviews will take place. If your name is not called,
sit tight and you will be down next. First can I have Xavier Dawson, Harry
Butler, Jake Callahan, Greyson Aoki-Park, and Miles Davis downstairs.
Please, and thank you!”
Xavier and I look at each other and then back to the girls. “I guess that’s
our que,” I say, nodding at Wren to come over to me and she does. “Do you
want to stay up here or come down?”
“If Michelle is going then I am too,” she replies, beaming at her new
best friend. We start to make our way through the crowds as I hold onto
Wren’s hand as we go down the stairs to the basement. It shouldn’t be this
nerve-racking. It’s just a stupid interview with my stupid friends. That’s it.
“Miles?”
“Mmm hmm.”
“You’re squeezing my hand,” she whispers. “It hurts.”
“Shit. I’m sorry,” I say, releasing her hand so my grip is loose. I bring
her hand to my mouth and kiss it as she blinks up at me with those killer
green eyes. “Better?”
She nods. “Much better.”
When we get down to the basement, it looks a lot more professional
than I thought. On one side of the room, there’s a white wall with a neon
light that reads ‘Sophia’s Corner’ behind a couch that’s big enough to fit ten
of us on there. On the seats on the couch, there is a sheet of paper with our
names on them, which I’m assuming is the order Sophia wants us to sit in.
I’m on one end next to Harry, Xavier, Grey and then Jake on the other end.
I’ve not even bothered to look in his direction since we got down here,
knowing that chaos would erupt if I did.
On the other side of the room there are brown chairs and tables filled
with drinks and snacks for the people that have agreed to stand silently and
watch the interview up close. Sophia’s director's chair also makes this
whole thing feel more official. You’d think we’re about to go live on air not
for a graduation video with the amount of effort that she’s put into this.
We all take our seats and Wren and Michelle stand on the other side of
the room, lingering around a table near where Sophia’s chair is. I try to get
my heartbeat to settle when I notice the team photo that Sophia has hung up
on the wall. She has one of all the major sports teams at NU, including the
skating team which she probably took for the yearbook. In our picture, it’s
the one where we’re celebrating our season win last year, Carter being held
up by all of us with the trophy in his hands. I shake off the uncomfortable
feeling and try to settle down. I look over at Wren and she does the dorkiest
most adorable thing ever, smiling wide as she gives me a double thumbs up.
I can do this.
“Are you guys ready?” Sophia asks, setting up her camera on her tripod
and pressing record before mouthing a countdown. “So, we are here with
the first interview of the day with some of my favourite players from the
North University Bear’s hockey team. We have Miles Davis on your right,
followed by Harry Butler, Xavier Dawson, Greyson Aoki-Park and Jake
Callahan. What a dream team, I must say.”
“When you’ve known each other as long as we have, it’s hard not to
work together so well,” Xavier says, looking up and down the line.
Everyone nods in agreement. “Of course, it was different for Haz over here,
since he’s only just joined the team in first year.”
Harry groans at the nickname we’ve all got for him and we all laugh.
“Just because I didn’t play with you guys in middle school or high school,
doesn’t make me that new to the team,” he retorts.
“How does it feel being the baby of the team, Harry? It must be a lot
different to playing hockey in Australia,” Sophia says, crossing her legs and
getting into her serious position.
“It feels good. I mean, in my town, ice hockey was pretty uncommon so
when my dad said we were moving here, it gave me the best opportunity to
try out for a team,” Harry explains.
“And how have you been settling in?” Sophia asks curiously. She gets
cut off by a loud groan coming from Grey. “Got something you want to say,
Greyson?”
“Yes,” he concedes. “You’re asking all the boring questions, cuz. No
one wants to know about how Harry enjoys the team.”
“First names only, Greyson Phillip Aoki-Park,” Sophia relays, pinning
him with a death stare. “Moving on. How are you, as a team, planning on
tackling the opposition in the new year? I hear you’ve got a very
competitive season ahead of you.”
“Out hustle, out work, out think, out play and out last,” Xavier says,
repeating our mantra that we have been using our whole lives. Obviously,
Jake snorts at that.
“Come on with the BS, Dawson,” Jake laughs. “What we’re really
going to do is beat the competition with whatever force we have. Hockey
isn’t just a mind game, it’s a physical one too.”
“Great. Thank you for that insight, Callahan,” Sophia mutters,
scribbling down notes on her notebook. I look over to Wren and she is not
trying at all to hide the disgust on her face.
“You’re welcome,” Jake replies proudly.
“Okay, so, you all agreed to talk about this before coming so here is just
a small warning before we get into it,” Sophia begins, not breaking eye
contact with me and I know exactly where this is going. “You all lost a vital
team member at the beginning of summer and I know it has not been easy
for any of you. Some more than others. I grew up with Carter as well, and
we all knew he was going to do amazing things. My next question is, how
are you planning on honouring him during this season? Xaiver, would you
like to go first?”
Xavier nods, looking at me before facing the camera. “Unlike some of
the tactics Jake likes to us, Carter was the calmest one on the team. I don’t
know how we managed to win every game with him even though he
seemed to be the most chilled out and relaxed on the ice. While the rest of
us were pushing into people, knocking them over, Carter kept a levelled
head. That’s how I’m planning on honouring him, by keeping calm and
spending as much time out of the penalty box as possible.”
We all nod, agreeing with the perfect answer. “It’ll be easier for some
more than others, I assume,” Sophia starts, “Ahem. Greyson.”
“Yeah, yeah. Whatever. I’m only in the sin bin because I like to play
dirty for the win,” Greyson says easily.
We seamlessly float into a conversation of Sophia asking rapid fire
questions before going back into the deeper ones. I don’t think I could do
this if it was anyone else but because I’ve known her forever, talking to her
feels easy. Fun, even.
I can’t decide if having Wren here is making it better or worse. She’s
still standing with Michelle, watching me intently. I can tell that she’s
listening to every word that I’m saying and I hope that it’s taking her mind
off skating for once and allowing her to be with us in the moment.
Sophia asks us about how we balance hockey and school, where we see
ourselves in five years and more hockey related questions. I stay quiet for
the most part, only answering questions that everyone else gets stuck on.
But Sophia’s next question catches me a little off guard.
“We all know that hockey is a team sport but what people really want to
know is how you stay focused in the game. How do you ensure that you are
on the right track and are going to perform your best as well as making sure
it’s a team effort?” she asks.
I look down the line, hoping that someone is going to pipe up. “I think
that this is Davis’ question,” Grey says, looking at me suggestively. Sophia
nods and I feel everyone’s eyes on me in the room.
I take a deep breath and just let out absolutely everything.
“As everybody knows, Carter is my best friend. We grew up together
and we were inseparable. I took his death hard and I didn’t let anybody in. I
was drinking a lot – sorry mom,” I admit, remembering that if my mom
comes to graduation, she’s going to know I’ve been underage drinking.
Everyone in the room laughs quietly. “I lost motivation to train and I hardly
ever went to the rink. But then I met Wren.” The smile that was on her face
drops as I connect my eyes with hers across the room. “She turned my life
around and she really saw me. She became the storm to the calm, quiet
loneliness that I was in in the best way possible. She thought that I was
hyperfixating on her instead of dealing with my problems but I managed to
kill two birds with one stone and I got though some of my problems while
also getting a gorgeous, smart, talented and just fucking brillaint girlfriend.”
“No cursing, Davis,” Sophia warns.
“Shit. Sorry,” I say and Sophia gives me an evil glare. “Wait, no. Fuck.
Can you take that bit out?” Sophia shakes her head at me, disappointed.
“All I'm trying to say is that having someone who cares about you by your
side is what helps me stay focused because I know that I'm not only doing it
for her but I do it for myself too so I can be the best version of myself for
her.”
The room is eerily silent as I look at Wren, watching the way her
features soften. Her eyes aren’t wide and panicked like they were when she
first came here. Instead, her eyes haven’t left mine since I started speaking
and her mouth is pinned into a warm smile, no doubt trying to decipher if
what I said was true or not. Hell, I don’t even know half of the words that
just came out of my mouth and where the truth lies within them.
I break eye contact with her, unable to bear the look on her face and
focus back on the interview. Sophia asks the group a few more questions
before letting us branch off before our individual interviews. I go over to
Wren and she’s now alone as Xaiver has pulled Michelle away.
“You good?” I ask, standing in front of her. She nods. “Is what I said
okay? You know, for the sake of the interview.”
“Yeah, it was perfect. I don’t know how you managed to make all that
up on the spot,” she whispers, almost laughing.
“It wasn’t hard to talk about how much I enjoy spending time with you.
Even when you give me a hard time,” I say, stepping in closer to her. I
watch her audibly swallow as she blinks up at me. I tug on her braid,
forcing her to tilt her head up to me and she looks way too good from this
position. I lean down to whisper in her ear, “They’re watching.”
She lets out a shaky exhale. “Of course.” She pulls back, trying not to
make it obvious that she wants to move out of my grip. Wren clears her
throat, looking down at the floor. “I need to go to practice. Will you be able
to drop me off?”
“Seriously, right now? Can’t you stay for a little longer?” I ask, shifting
my weight on one foot to the other.
“I need to go. I’ve already missed out of a lot of time just being here,”
she says, looking up at me. “If you’ve got to stay to do your individual
interview, I can just walk.”
“I can do it really quickly and then I can take you. I’ll just ask Sophia-”
She cuts me off by rising on her tiptoes and pressing a kiss to my cheek.
“It’s okay. You stay. I’ll see you soon.”
She doesn’t wait for me to respond before she’s already climbing up the
stairs out of the basement.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 24
WREN
I know that running out of the basement was a bad idea but I can’t tell
Miles about Austin right now. I haven’t told anyone about Austin yet. He
said it himself that I stress him out when I’m stressed, so me leaving that
night was the best thing to do. For the both of us. I even managed to get in a
few hours of practice before the school rink closed. Still, I basically dragged
myself to the rink this morning so I could get in a few hours of practice.
I’ve been avoiding my mom like a fucking disease but I can’t deal with
seeing her right now. As much as I love my sister, I hate that she’s put this
kind of pressure on me, especially right before I have my show. I know my
mom is hard to please but I’m sure she would come around if Austin could
just own up and tell her. Having a baby is such a huge thing, I’m confident
that my mom could find it somewhere in her black heart to accept it.
Instead, I’m greeted with four feet of flowers every time I walk into my
apartment as some sick way of my mom showing that she still cares that I
exist without actually trying to speak to me.
I make my way back home after a long day at the rink, ready to avoid
the girls and take a long bath before snuggling in my bed with a paperback
in my hands. Most nights, Scarlett and Kennedy watch a movie like we
used to before I had the weight of the world on my back. But now, I’m so
used to walking past them, mumbling a ‘good night’ that I don’t even
realise that they’ve spoken to me.
“What?” I say in the near darkness, tugging my duffel bag higher up my
shoulder. I step closer into the living room, looking at their makeshift fort
that they’ve huddled in. They both pop their heads out of the fort, pulling
the blanket around them.
“We’re going out tonight and you’re coming with us,” Scarlett demands.
“I want to stay home. I’m exhausted,” I say.
“You’re always exhausted. A night out will wake you up,” Kennedy
adds with a shimmy.
“The showcase is in less than three weeks,” I say, sighing. As much as
their friendship means the absolute world to me, sometimes I just want to be
alone, needing to find a way to figure out how the hell I’m going to figure
out the situation with Austin.
"No, Wren. You're going to speak to us because that's what friends are
for. You’re not going to shut us out because you’re stressed. Let your stress
become our stress,” Kennedy relays.
“You guys really don’t want to know what’s been going on,” I whisper,
everything that has happened in the last few weeks coming rushing back to
me.
“Try us,” Scarlett challenges.
*
"What the fuck? Are you serious?" Scarlett exclaims once I’ve finished
explaining everything to them. Everything from the Drive-In, to kissing
Miles, to finding out about Austin to whatever the hell it was at Sophia’s
house. It feels good to vent even though most of what I’m saying doesn’t
make much sense to me anymore.
We’re at a secluded bar that Scarlett managed to get us into because of
her family’s access to getting away with drinking without getting asked for
ID. I don’t usually drink but being around these two, I feel safe enough and
hell, I’m going to need it.
“Unfortunately, I’m being very serious,” I say, sipping more of my
cocktail.
“No wonder you’ve been so distant,” Kennedy says quietly, shaking her
head. “Does she really just expect you to tell your mom for her?” I nod.
“Jesus. If Mia ever asked me to do something like that, I’d tell her to suck it
up and do it herself.”
“I tried but she cut me off and isn’t answering any of my calls,” I admit,
feeling helpless
“So what are you going to do?” Scarlett asks.
“I don’t know. I’m going to wait it out and see if she’ll tell her herself. I
just know that this whole thing is going to come crashing down on me, no
matter who tells her.”
As if they both planned it, they both trap me in a hug from both sides
and I melt into them. We have always done group hugs like this; the person
who needs it the most is almost suffocating in the middle with the others
acting as the anchor, keeping us together. When we pull apart, I can still feel
them around me, making anywhere become a home with them in my arms.
“Tell you what you need, Wrenny?” Scarlett asks.
“For you to stop calling me that nickname?” I ask hopefully.
“Shots!” she shouts.
And we do.
We drink so fucking much.
I don’t think I’ve ever consumed this much alcohol in my life but it’s
making me feel alive. As if all my problems can be dealt with tomorrow
and all that matters is being in this moment with my friends. My friends that
are screaming Taylor Swift lyrics at the top of their lungs. I try to make a
mental note to apologise to the bar staff who have had to put up with our
atrocious singing for the last two hours.
“I love you guys so fucking much,” I scream when ‘Blank Space’
finishes. They pull me into a tight hug again, their microphones jabbing into
my stomach. “Like, so, so, much.”
“Oh no,” Kennedy shouts.
“What is it? Have I had something in my teeth this whole time?”
Scarlett asks, frantically searching for her mirror in her purse .
“No. Your teeth are perfect, babe. I just realised that Wren is an
emotional drunk,” Kennedy says, pouting at me.
“I’m not emotional and I’m not a drink,” I slur, waving her off.
“Drunk, babe. You mean you’re not drunk,” Scarlett says, patting me on
the back. Thank god she knows how to speak. “And you are. Watch.”
She pulls her phone out of her back pocket and clicks on her home
screen and it’s a picture of the two of us at our kindergarten graduation. We
look so tiny and small and so cute. We’ve got the biggest grins on our
toothless faces with our graduation caps and gowns on. Then she clicks the
screen and the worst thing happens. It changes to a picture of all of us,
Kennedy now included, at our high school graduation, smiling as we hold
our diplomas.
“See, that’s just cruel,” I say, the sob ripping through me unexpectedly.
“I miss you guys.”
“We’re right here, Wrenny. And we always will be if you let us,”
Kennedy says, looking at me with her gorgeous brown doe eyes. Then the
waterworks are really flowing. God, I can’t get myself to stop. “More
drinks!”
Then we drink more as the last few weeks I’ve had fade into a blur.
Then my mind goes into a no-go zone. The Miles Zone. Suddenly all I can
think about are his green eyes and his kind words and the fact that I’ve
pushed him away since the interview and that I’ve tried to avoid thinking
about him.
I do the stupid thing and pull out my phone which opens up to a picture
of the two of us. It’s a selfie he took while he was confiscating my phone as
I studied. He’s got the cheesiest grin on his face and is holding the camera
high so you can see me in the background, my head buried deep in books.
By the time he gave me my phone back, this was the picture he changed the
home screen to and I haven’t had the energy to change it back.
I do an even stupider thing and I call him.
He picks up on the third ring.
“Milesy, baby. I miss you,” I say, the words unable to stop coming out
of my mouth. The girls look at me with a sceptical look and I turn away
from them, walking towards the bar to sit down. “What are you doing? Who
are you with? You’re not cheating on me, are you?”
Apparently I’m a jealous drunk too. I hear him laugh low over the
phone. “I’m on a Costco run with Evan. What are you doing?”
“Drinking at a bar with Kenny and Scarlett,” I say through a yawn. I
whisper as if it’s a secret, “I think I’m drunk.”
“Really? I couldn’t tell,” he replies. “Are you okay, though? Where are
you?”
“Shhhh. Stop shouting at me or I’m going to kiss you.”
He laughs but I don’t see what’s funny. “You’re going to kiss me? Do
you mean kill, Wren?”
Oh. “Stupid autocorrect.”
“You can't autocorrect with your voice, baby.”
“Stop calling me baby or I will kiss you,” I murmur but I don’t think he
hears me. All I hear is a sharp inhale so I continue. “Can you come and get
us, please. I need you.”
“Can you turn on your location for me?” he asks gently and I fumble to
change the screen so I can send him my location. "I’m on my way.”
Less than twenty minutes later, we’re still all very drunk, a little less sad
than before and the boys have turned up. Maybe I should have given
Scarlett a trigger warning about Evan showing up because she almost
throws up when she sees him. Which I can’t tell is because of the alcohol or
because of the disgust she has for him. Evan is casually in pants, a crisp
white shirt and a black tie hanging loose on his neck while Miles is wearing
grey sweatpants and a white shirt.
Scarlett comes beside me as we stand in a line, staring at the boys as if
they’ve interrupted a kidnapping. “Why is he here? You promised no
blondes,” she tries to whisper but she’s basically shouting in my ear.
“I promised no such thing. Plus, he was already with Miles in his fancy
car,” I say back, remembering the black Escalade that Evan’s driver has.
Yes, he has a driver. What is this life?
“I can't help it if I'm blonde,” Evan retorts, running a hand through his
hair.
“You can dye your hair,” Kennedy suggests.
“Done.”
“No! Don't do that,” Scarlett says, stumbling towards him as if he’s
about to dye his hair this minute. Evan laughs, holding her as she almost
falls into him.
“You just said how much you hate my blondeness.”
“That doesn't mean I want you to dye it,” she mumbles, trying to get
herself out of his grip but he keeps his hands on her forearms. “Would you
really do it if I told you to?”
“If it annoys you that much, of course I would, Angel.”
What the hell? When did this happen? Has he always called her Angel?
And has she always let him? I’m not going to remember this in the morning
so I will start to erase it from my memory now. They both stare at each
other and it's hard to tell which one of them is drunk at this point.
Until Scarlett finally says, “I’m drunk I don't know what I'm saying.”
I’m drunk and I don’t know what I’m saying, title of your sex tape, I want to
say but maybe right now is not the time to bring up my Brooklyn Nine-Nine
obsession.
“Drunk thoughts are sober words,” I say, trying my absolute best to
wink at Scarlett.
“That's not how the saying goes. But good job, baby,” Miles says,
wrapping his arm around my waist. “Can you walk okay?”
“I think you might need to carry me”
“Really?” I nod, smiling up at him. “Fine.”
He picks me up in a fireman's carry, hauling me over and I’m lucky I’m
not wearing the skirt that the girls begged me to wear. Luckily, all Miles can
see is my fully clothed ass in my favourite pair of jeans. He carries me all
the way to the car as Evan has Kennedy and Scarlett on each side of him
and they slip into the back with us. We drive home mostly in silence and
Miles insists on walking us up to the door.
After the girls have gone to their rooms, Miles follows me into mine.
I’m still a little tipsy, on the verge of falling asleep but the second that Miles
comes into my room, I’m fully awake. It’s pitch black outside and Miles
Davis is in my bedroom and he’s looking at me, waiting for me to do or say
something. Anything. He steps closer towards me and the back of my knees
hit the bed and I sit down. My heartbeat is racing a thousand miles per hour
as he kneels down in front of me and- Pushes me down? Obviously he
wasn’t about to go down on me because that would be insane. Instead, he
urges me to get inside my covers and he wraps them around me.
He passes me the glass of water that I hadn’t realised was there and I
take a few gulps. He places it back on the nightstand and gets into the bed
with me. I’m laying down, tucked neatly under the covers as Miles sits
beside me on top of them, looking down at me.
I turn to the ceiling and say, “I’m sorry about that.”
“I’m just glad you're having fun. You deserve a break sometimes, you
know,” he says, sliding down onto the bed next to me, our shoulders
brushing against each other. He looks up at the ceiling too as I turn to him
before facing upwards again.
“I don't deserve anything. I don't deserve you and I especially don't
deserve a break,” I say into the air. I don’t know what’s going on with me? I
know how pathetic I sound but I can’t tell my mouth to stop. He turns to me
now, one arm resting beneath his face and the other wrapping a finger
around my hair and it distracts me for a second that I almost miss what he
asks next.
“What do you mean?”
“I don’t think I try hard enough. If I tried hard enough my mom would
actually like me and I wouldn't be constantly trying to win her approval.”
His face is so close to mine now, the light touch of his hand centring me
as his words reverberate through me. “You have no idea do you?”
“What?” I breathe.
“You have no idea how special you are, Wren, and it breaks my heart
everytime I hear you speak like that. Because I would give up everything in
this world for you to realise that you're perfect in every way that counts.”
I suddenly feel like all the alcohol has left my body as the words leave
his mouth and puncture me right in the heart. This is what it feels like for
my inner child to be healed. I do what I’ve been needing to do since I saw
him today and I wrap my arms around him. It’s a little struggle at first since
we’re both lying down but once we’re comfortable, I nuzzle my face into
his neck, breathing in his lavender smell. Instinctively, I hook my leg over
his. Not in a way to be purposefully sexual, it’s just what feels the most
comfortable right now.
“Can you stay here tonight? Just hold me,” I ask into his skin, not
wanting him to leave me just yet. Yeah, I really am an emotional drunk.
“Rule number three, Wren,” he says.
“This doesn't count. I'm not asking you to sleep with me. Well I am, just
not like that. Can you, please? I need you. Here,” I admit, realising that this
is the only thing keeping me calm. The only thing that is keeping my
heartbeat at a settled pace.
“Anything you want,” he says, brushing my hair out of my face.
He gently pushes me to turn around until my back is flush against his
front, his arms braced tight around me. I don’t tell him about Austin or how
stressed I am because it doesn’t feel like the right time. All I need is to be
held by him and it seems like he needs it too. So, he holds me.
All night.
He’s just there.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 25
WREN
I’ve spent the better half of two weeks practicing non-stop. Maybe I’ve
started to go delirious since I’ve not been eating well, and all my days have
become on big cluster. Every time I close my eyes, I see myself falling on
the ice again and I can’t get that image out of my head. I need to get it out
my head. I know I’ve been distant with Miles after that night at the bar, but
I had to. After having a few days off to hang out with my friends, I've
needed to go back to skating everyday.
Whenever I’m around him, I’m drawn to him, and I want to do things
that I know I shouldn’t. Things that will distract me. That is the last thing
either of us need. He was good for a distraction when everything felt so far
away. When the showcase was months away instead of tonight.
These showcases are not graded but they’re for fun to lead up to the real
competitions. In a way, it’s a good practice to have in front of an audience
before the holidays. This way, if people turn up here, they’re more likely to
turn up to the real events. Coach Darcy says it’s vital to do things for fun in
between comp season and I usually enjoy them. I love the feeling of
skating. I like being on the ice and my body just flowing with the music in a
practiced motion.
But nothing is ever fun with my mom. If anything, these things give her
more of a reason to critique me. “Denise Beillmann was sixteen was she
landed her first triple Lutz,” she always says, comparing me to one of my
idols. With Austin’s situation, it means that I have to do my best. Now more
than ever.
With all the practice I’ve been doing, I haven’t spoken to either of the
girls much either since they convinced me to go out. They know when I get
like this: I push everything else aside and I focus on doing better. Since I
shouted at them and left, I have been sneaking out early in the morning to
avoid talking to them and I sneak back in late at night when I know they’ve
gone to sleep. Even on the few days when they're both watching New Girl
re-runs late at night and offer me to join them, I decline and lock myself in
my room. Since we aired out why I was stressed, they've understood that
sometimes I need time for myself.
I’ve been practicing all morning, doing the most I can to make this
routine flawless. There is one other duet on my team and three soloists:
Eva, Madelyn, and Augustus. They don’t take these showcases as serious as
the comps, but I have run into them a few times at the other rink in town.
We all have a strange relationship.
Since Augustus and I broke up, we’ve not spoken, or barley glanced at
each other. We were pretty close with the other skaters when we were
together but when we broke up, they all took his side. They all think I’m too
cold and insecure and that he was right to breakup with me. That I deserved
it. They only think that because they don’t have the weight of the world on
their backs every time they need to skate. They get to do it for fun. They
have that choice.
“Good luck today,” I hear a voice from behind me as I walk towards the
locker rooms. For a second, I think it’s Miles but when I turn around, I see
him.
Augustus Holden.
He’s a few inches taller than me, a typically uptight Russian with dark
blond hair and scarily sharp cheekbones. He's attractive in a way he
shouldn't be. It's almost unfair. It's just my luck that I see him before my
performance.
He stalks towards me in his white body shirt and I freeze.
“What?”
“I said,good luck. We both know you’re going to need it after
regionals,” he growls as he towers over me. My back presses against the
wall, trying to put some space between us but he moves in closer.
“Don’t give me that bullshit," I retort, "We both know that you messed
up our routine on purpose."
“Ah, Amelia. That’s not what happened, and you know it. I told you I
didn’t want you anymore and you couldn’t take it. It’s not my problem you
let your feelings get in the away of the performance.”
I curl my hands into fists and take a deep breath before shoving him in
his chest, but he doesn't move by much. “Go fuck yourself, Augustus.”
"Oh, you'd love that wouldn't you," he snarls, leaning further into me as
his expensive cologne invades my senses. "I know you like to watch when I
get myself off."
I take in another deep breath, and I meet his icy blue eyes and whisper
between pushes at his chest, "Fuck. You."
I didn't even realise there was someone else in the corridor until I see
Miles' tall body next to me, almost towering over Augustus. He's dressed in
dark jeans and a white top, but I can only see the large expanse of his back.
"Wanna say that louder, baby? I don’t think he heard you," Miles says,
turning back to me before blocking Augustus from my view as he pushes
him, and he stumbles back.
Is it just me or has the temperature climbed up in this corridor?
Augustus laughs incredulously, looking at me from the side of Miles as
he points at him. "This is your boyfriend?"
I nod.
Fake boyfriend.
Fake.
Fake.
Fake.
Augustus gives him Miles a once-over, snickering like a middle
schooler. There must be something because my fake boyfriend is gorgeous.
No matter how irritating he is.
"Got a problem with that, Gus?" Miles asks and I can literally see the
blood drain from Augustus' face. If they were to fight right now, my money
would be on Miles. Augustus is tall but he couldn't hold a candle to the
burliness of Miles.
"Not at all," he bites out, shaking his head before sauntering off down
the corridor. I let out a real breath of relief this time and Miles turns around
to me.
I immediately burst out laughing. This is why Augustus couldn't take
him seriously. Hell, even I can't. Even though this guy oozes sex he also has
poor fashion choices. His T-shirt has 'I heart my girlfriend' written across it
in bold letters and a red heart. I shake my head at him.
"Come here," he sighs over my hysterical laughter. I do just that. I walk
into his open arms and wrap myself around his middle, falling into his
lavender smell. His arms feel like coming home after being away for weeks.
I can't believe I tried to push this away after what he did for me a few weeks
ago. He rubs his hand down my spine reassuringly. "You okay?"
"I'm perfect," I muffle into his shirt. I give him one last squeeze before
pulling apart from him as he catches both of my hands, beaming at me. "I'm
sorry you had to see that."
"I'm glad I was here. Someone needed to put him in his place," Miles
growls. He shifts his weight to his left foot, letting go of my hands and
shoving them in my pockets. "The shows starting soon. So, I'll let you get
ready."
I nod. "Thank you, Miles. I appreciate it." He smiles at me before
nodding to the locker rooms, urging me to go.
I turn around and go into the locker room. I appreciate you, I want to
say but the words get stuck in my throat. I keep my composure when I get
out my black and emerald outfit for tonight. I stay calm when I take off my
leggings and sweatshirt. I’m fine when I step into the shower but as soon as
the heat hits me, I break down.
I allow myself to cry. I give myself fifteen minutes before I have to suck
it up and move on.
I cry out of the pressure, the constant torment of trying to always do my
best.
I cry for Austin, knowing that I have to do well in order to tell my mom
after the show.
I cry over Augustus’ stupid comment and Miles' sweet words. Over his
hugs and how I could have had more of them this week. How badly I
wished I hadn’t shut him out.
I get out of the shower and put on my costume. I look into the mirror as
I apply subtle makeup to my inflamed face. I braid my hair into a bun and
secure it with some bobby pins before I head out of the door.
When I get back into the small arena, people are already starting to fill
the area. A lot more people than I thought would turn up. I search the slow
emerging crowd, but I only spot Sophia with a few other girls sat around
her. I can't see where Miles has gone to, and I can't see my girls either.
Before I can worry about that, my mom starts strutting towards me in her
dark blue pantsuit: a black handbag in one hand and her phone in the other.
“Oh, Amelia. I’m glad I could catch you before the show,” she says
frantically as she places her hands on my face, inspecting it. She tilts my
face up to the side as she stares into the space between my eyes and
underneath them.
“Hello to you too, mother,” I muffle, as her hands squeeze my cheeks
before she drops them. “Coming to wish me luck?”
“Yes, and I must speak with you afterwards.” My stomach drops.
Maybe she already knows. Maybe Austin sucked it up and told her herself,
saving me the torture of doing it.
“I need to talk to you too, actually,” I say.
She pulls out her phone and scrolls through it, ignoring me as she
mumbles to herself. She always gets like this before performances. More
jittery and antsy than I am. I call her name to snap her back into reality but
she’s still scrolling.
“Ah, it’s better that we talk afterwards,” she says dismissively when she
finally looks up at me, her pupils huge. “Remember to stay focused. Stay
sharp.”
I nod and she rushes off to her seat. I look up into the stands and now
even more people are here. It’s still not as full as it would be at the hockey
games but it’s something. It’s better. I search the crowds and I see them.
Miles is stood up, no doubt, searching for me too still wearing that stupid
shirt.
When his eyes connect with mine, he smiles wide. I lift up my hand
sheepishly and wave, he waves back before tapping on Kennedy and
Scarlett’s shoulders and pointing to me. They both get up and wave their
hands as if they’re trying to flag down a taxi. I laugh to myself before the
lights start to dim and Eva Devinsky starts her routine.
She’s gorgeous as I watch from the railing, basically drooling. She
glides and spins to ‘I’d like you for Christmas,’ by Julie London, not
missing a step or a beat. It’s hypnotising watching her gracefully work
around the ice. I could watch her for hours if I could. She finishes with a
flourish and the crowd cheers, and I whoop. I move towards the entrance,
knowing that I’m next. This is it.
They announce my name on the intercom as I glide onto the ice, getting
ready in my starting position as Video Games by Lana Del Rey begins.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 26
MILES
I meant it when I said that she was mesmerising. Watching her here, in
her full outfit, the music reaching the speakers and the rink almost full of
people. She performs her routine flawlessly, not a single misstep. Her face
is concentrated but effortlessly beautiful. She glides across the ice
gracefully, each spin and turn landing smoothly.
I can’t tear my eyes away even if I wanted to. There is something so
elegant and satisfying about watching her skate. I watch as she gets lost
between the lyrics and the movements. I look around to see everyone else
with the same expression: pure hypnosis. Even though playing hockey is
similar with the adrenaline and the thrill but this feels so different. When
we’re on the ice we’re fighting, roughing each other up as we try to score a
goal. But this?
This is completely magical. Utterly consuming. I could watch her like
this for hours and I would never get bored. If she didn’t hate it when I watch
her practice, I could spend the rest of my life just sitting in this seat while
she moves around the ice.
She looks so peaceful while she dances, her body moving seamlessly
with the music. I can tell there are so many intricate patterns and details that
she puts into this routine. Like the way she rolls her head back slightly, the
way her arms right down to her fingers flow. Even when her eyes close for a
few seconds, there are no faults.
She looks up at me for a split second and I smile at her, but her smile
wanders somewhere else in the crowd, and it drops. Her face turns sour as
she turns back around, skating in the other direction. My heartbeat quickens
and my stomach twists. I try to find who she is looking at, but I can’t see
anyone else other than Kennedy and Scarlett who are watching her beside
me with adoration.
Her routine comes to an end, and we stand up to clap and whoop. Wren
gives a shy smile in her finishing position before skating off the ice. I walk
down to her as she’s getting off the ice, not able to wait any longer. Even
when I get down to her, people are still cheering.
“You did amazing. Like, so fucking good, Wren,” I say when she steps
off. I slip my hand around her waist and kiss her on the cheek. She doesn’t
throw me a confused look like she usually does, instead she slips out of my
grasp and pushes away from me which is worse.
“Thank you,” she replies bluntly as she catches her breath. “I didn’t land
my Lutz as good as I did in practice but it’s fine. I think. Did you meet my
mom up there?”
Her words come out in a weird breathy clump. “What? Uh, no. I didn’t
know she was here.” I look around the stands as people watch the duet on
the ice.
She makes a humph sound as she sits down at the bench outside the
rink. She sits there for a long moment, not saying anything until all the
performances are over and everyone surges out of the stadium. Even when
Kennedy and Scarlett come over to say well done, she gives them a smile
before dropping it and turning to face the empty rink. They don’t make a
fuss and they walk away. I don’t know what to do. She’s not said a word
since they left and she just stares out into the empty space, her eyes fixed on
something unknown.
“What’s wrong? Is there anything I can do?” I ask when more silence
fills the stadium. I put my hand on her back reassuringly. Her mouth opens
and then she shuts it. She shakes her head as if to get rid of whatever she
was about to say. Heels click behind us, and we both turn around.
“Mother,” Wren says curtly as she stands up. She turns and walks
towards her mom who is rather dressed up for the occasion “Glad you could
join us.”
I stand up, brushing myself off as I walk toward her, standing next to
Wren. I didn’t know I would be meeting the dean as the guy who’s dating
her daughter. If I did, I would have worn something that isn’t jeans and a
shirt saying how much I love her daughter.
“Yes, well, I had to take a phone call,” Ms Hackerly says with a waft of
her hand.
“Yeah, I noticed. It was hard to miss since it was right in the middle of
my performance,” Wren mutters. It takes me a second to put the pieces
together.
That’s why she’s been so distant.
Why she stopped smiling at me.
“Speak up, darling,” she drawls but Wren stays silent, practically
shrinking away in her presence. I shift next to her, not knowing what to do
with myself. “Is this your boyfriend everyone has been telling me about?”
What is it and everyone asking that question like that today? Like I'm a
disappointment. As if I'm not good enough for her. First Augustus, now her
mom.
Wren nods as I swallow the distaste in Ms Hackerly’s tone. Her dad
might like me but her mom doesn't. I don't think she likes anyone. “Hi, I’m
Miles Davis. We had a meeting a few weeks ago. I play hockey here. Sort
of,” I ramble as I extend my hand. She gives it a weird look before shaking
it.
“Yes, I know who you are,” she says. Okay. She turns to Wren. “Listen,
your performance was good. I know I was distracted but it doesn’t take a
genius to point out your Lutz needs more work.”
“Of course, you found space in your busy schedule to critique me.
You’re unbelievable,” Wren scoffs. She hooks her arm into mine. “We’re
going.”
She tugs at my arm, looking up at me with teary eyes before walking in
the other direction. I don’t say anything because what am I supposed to say?
I knew they had a shifty relationship, but I don’t think it’s my place to step
in. She doesn’t need me to save her. All I can do just follow after her like
the lost puppy I am.
“You said you needed to speak to me about something, Amelia,” her
mom shouts after us. Wren stops walking and turns around, her cheeks red
as if she’s been caught. What the hell is going on?
“It’s nothing. It’s fine. I’ll call you,” she stutters.
“Okay, fine. If you want to be like that. I was going to go away to Palm
Springs after Christmas and into the new year with Mike,” her mom begins
but Wren interrupts her.
“Great. Have fun.”
“But he has an important surgery coming up and he doesn’t want to
disrupt his schedule. That’s why he called me. We were going to reschedule
but he suggested that we let the two of you go. If you’d like,” Ms Hackerly
explains, not seeming happy about the idea at all.
“I need to practice,” Wren says, her voice somewhere between surprise
and anger. I look down at her and her face is hard. Unmovable. I put hand
around her waist and pull her into me.
“I think we should go. You need to take a break,” I whisper into her ear.
She tenses at the way my breath tickles her skin as she inhales a shaky
breath. “You deserve it, Wren.”
“Okay. Okay, fine,” she murmurs before turning to her mom, her voice
stronger. “Thank you. We’d like that.”
*
“So, what are your Christmas plans?” I ask Wren as we eat in her
living room, sat on the floor around her coffee table. We ordered Thai food.
Well, I ordered Thai food, and she took a salad out of her refrigerator.
“Uh, nothing. My mom said that our flight to Palm Springs is on the
26th so I guess I’ll spend Christmas Day here with Kennedy and Scarlett.
My family aren’t very Christmassy people,” she mumbles between chews.
“Oh yeah? How come?”
“Since the divorce, it’s just felt kind of unnecessary. Especially after my
mom remarried because her step kids are, like, ancient, so we’ve not
bothered with it much.”
“Do you like Christmas though?” I ask, nudging her under the table with
my foot. A smile creeps up her face. She’s more chilled out than before. I
think the whole pressure of the performance got to her but since she’s eaten,
she’s lightened up. Food always solves Wren-related problems.
“I kind of have to when we’re covered in snow every year,” she mutters,
not fully meeting my eyes. “I guess I do like it. I like the seeing my friends
and family part the most but the whole gift giving thing was always an
afterthought.”
“My parents are having Christmas Eve dinner at home this year. They
invited us but I wasn’t going to go because my mom and I are in a weird
place. But if you want to, we can go,” I ramble, unable to stop the
momentum.
I wasn’t going to mention that I was invited because as soon as I got the
message from Clara, I was going to decline it but hearing this, I had to ask.
“Of course, I’ll go. How could I miss the opportunity to see baby
pictures of you,” she beams.
“Are you sure? My family is a little…unhinged.” I cringe at myself.
“They can’t be anymore unhinged than mine.”
“Let’s test that theory, shall we?”
Wren gives me a wide smile before shoving more salad into her mouth.
She chews thoughtfully, looking down at her food and then at me.
“You never talk about your parents. Is there anything I should know
before we go?” she asks cautiously. I let my heartbeat pick up before
forcing it to settle and get it out.
“My mom had an affair a few years ago and I only just found out,” I say
quickly, trying to get it all out there at once. “That’s why we’re in a weird
situation.”
“Oh, that sucks. I’m sorry,” Wren replies, sympathetically. “But your
parents are still together, right?”
“Yeah, that’s the weird part. My dad somehow found it within himself
to forgive her. When I thought they were going on date nights it turns out
they were going to couples therapy,” I laugh but it sounds forced.
“And you haven’t forgiven her?” It sounds more like statement than a
question, as if she can already tell. Like she’s able to see right through me.
“I’m trying to. I’m just scared that if I see her, I won’t know how to
act,” I admit. “We haven’t really spoken since I found out and I don’t know
what I’m going to say.”
“That’s something that will come to you when we go. I’m going to be
there. If you want to leave at any time, I can pretend I have diarrhoea or
something,” she suggests, laughing. I laugh with her but shake my head.
“I couldn’t let you do that. I don’t think Clara would ever let us live it
down,” I say, and her eyes widen. She scrambles from her side of the table
and kneels in front of me, her hands on my shoulders, shaking them slightly.
“Shit, Miles. I forgot you have a sister. She’s going to hate me,” she
concedes frantically. I chuckle and put my arms on her shoulders, like she’s
doing to me.
“She’s going to love you, Wren. You’ve got nothing to worry about.”
“Yeah, but she’s a girl. She’ll know. She’ll find something she doesn’t
like. I know she will.”
“There is nothing about you that she wouldn’t like. You’re perfect.”
It’s like time stopped when I said that. It’s like everything else around
us seized to exist and we’re left floating outside of this moment. Oblivion. I
knew I was cutting it close by saying ‘love’ and ‘perfect’ in one go. I watch
her, almost in slow-motion as she takes in a sharp inhale.
We stare at each other for a long minute, the weight of the day crashing
down on us as my words hang in the space between us. All the hurt and
anger that was there when she was talking to her mom earlier has vanished.
Instead, she looks at me with a smoothed out and relaxed expression. Her
eyes drop to my lips, and I wet them on purpose. She hums. The noise
ripples through me.
We haven’t been this close since the night after the game. I don’t move
as she brings her hand from my shoulder to my cheek. Her thumb brushes
just beneath my eye as her slender fingers reach the back of my ear.
"Miles," she whispers my name like it's something sacred. The word
comes out of her mouth like a sigh, as if she's tired, frustrated and fed-up all
in one.
I mirror her position, my hands curling around her neck as she inhales
again We look at each other, dangerously, ready to risk everything. Then,
with the shreds of the self-control I have left, I drop my forehead to hers.
“I should go,” I whisper into the space between us.
She lets out a sigh before nodding. I stand up and grab my jacket and I
look back at her when I almost reach the door.
"Thank you," she murmurs.
"What?" I ask. She’s still in the position that I left her in, kneeling
down, staring out of the apartment window.
"I said, thank you. For everything."
My chest tightens at her words. "Anytime."
It takes all that I am not to grab her into my arms and kiss her deeply. To
really have her. For real. For once.
Instead, I unlock the door and slip out of it.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 27
WREN
Eating Christmas Eve dinner with Miles’ family was a lot less
awkward than I thought it would be. Although Miles doesn’t talk to his
mom much, everyone else seems to be getting along great. Clara basically
carries the table with her work horror stories.
She works on low budget film projects with her friends and enters them
into festivals. You wouldn’t believe how many of her stories end with
getting booked for a job, but it turns out to be some weirdos wanting to film
a porno. Even with the inappropriate jokes she makes, neither one of her
parents seem to bat an eye at the candour. If something like this was said
around my mom, she would have slapped me silly.
“Oh my God, Miles, have you told Wren about Felicity?” Clara
exclaims loudly when we’re eating dessert. Their parents have gone into the
kitchen, leaving us to talk in the dining room.
“Oh, Clar, don’t,” Miles replies, shaking his head with a blush. I’ve
never seen his face go so red before and it’s making my stomach crowd
with butterflies.
“I have not heard about this. Who is Felicity?” I say, leaning on my
hands at Clara. She takes a long swig of her wine before starting.
“She was Miles’s first crush. He was probably around five or six and
there was this girl in his kindergarten class who he thought was cute. So, he
came to me, asking for my help. And as the hopeless romantic tween I was,
I suggested that he write a song for her. I think Miles should tell the rest of
the story.” She gestures to him. He’s still shaking his head but now he’s
laughing.
“Long story short, I sung her the song at recess, and she started crying.
Not out of happiness,” he admits, shoving his face into his hand.
“I must hear this song immediately,” I demand. I look over to Clara who
is smiling wide, but Miles’ expression is serious. I nudge him with my knee
and his face cracks.
“Felicity, will you be with me? Felicity, do you like cream cheese?
Felicity, your eyes are so pretty,” he opera sings at the top of his lungs.
I start hysterically laughing, tears springing to my eyes. I’ve always
known he was a bad singer but Jesus. That poor girl who had to hear this at
recess. I would have cried too. He takes a deep breath as if he’s about to
continue.
“No, please stop,” I scream, and I cover his mouth with my hand. A
devilish smile spreads across his face as he nips my hand with his teeth. I
pull my hand away, shaking it out as I glare at him.
“I think he’s learnt a few moves since then if he’s managed to get you to
date him,” Clara comments, tipping her glass towards me. I look up at him
and he’s already looking at me. I hide the smile on my face my snuggling
deeper into his side, letting myself pretend that this is real for two seconds.
Which is easy because Miles is great to be around. He doesn't expect
anything of me. We just exist. “Do you want to know what he said when he
first told me about you?”
“I’m genuinely frightened to find out,” I say.
I feel his warm hand slowly move from his thigh to mine, just beneath
my dress. He squeezes it gently before leaving his hand there. I cross my
legs, trapping his hand between my thighs on purpose and I hear him suck
in a breath. I can feel the heat on my face, so I try not look at him.
“He mentioned you for the first time and I was asked who you were.
Then he said, ‘she’s my girlfriend but she’s everything.”
I can feel my heart racing as soon as the words leave her mouth.
Everything. Why does everything he pretends to say make my heart swell? I
can feel the tears prickling at my eyes, but I blink them back and turn to
him.
“He said that?” I ask Clara while still looking at him.
I can’t tear my eyes away from him. He looks at me passionately, as if
we’re suddenly existing outside of time. As if there is no one else in this
room but us.
“I did,” he murmurs.
When Miles takes me home, we wait in the car when we're parked
outside my apartment. I don't feel like going in just yet and I don't know
why. I know my girls are going to be waiting for me, ready to pester me
with questions the second I get in there.
Instead, I turn to Miles in the car.
He's taken off his jumper and he's in a short-sleeved black top, his curly
hair falling wildly on his forehead as he taps rhythmically onto the steering
wheel, letting us sit in comfortable silence.
"You're getting to good at this," I say, the words falling out of my mouth
almost accidently.
"At what?" he asks, slowly turning to me.
"The whole boyfriend thing," I say, "Why is it that you weren't dating
anyone? Isn't it supposed to be in your culture?"
He laughs, running a hand through his hair before pinning me with a
look. "I've had one serious relationship: Emily. But you know about her. We
just didn't work out. We had different goals and we weren't committed to
make time for each other."
I nod, chewing on my bottom lip. "But it's different with me?"
"Yes, Wren. It's different with you."
My heart trips over itself. "Because we're fake dating?"
He shrugs. "Sure."
"Do you think-" I begin but he cuts me off.
"I had a good time today," he begins and I smile. "I know my family are
a bit much to deal with but you made it bearable. Better."
I don't follow up what I was going to say. Because what was I going to
say? I've had a good day with a nice boy who turns out to be more than
what he lets on. That's the only reason why I feel like I want to stay in the
car and sing christmas songs with him forever.
"I had a good time too," I say, breaking eye contact with him as I glance
up a the apartment blocks. "I'll see you tomorrow, then."
"Tomorrow, and the day after that, and the day after that and the-"
"Don't make me regret taking this vacation, Milesy," I reply, cutting of
his rambling.
"I would never compromise having so much alone time with you," he
replies with that smug smile of his and I slip out of the car.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 28
WREN
They continue to play truth or dare while I slip away into the kitchen,
cleaning up some of the plates and dishes that we ended up using. Today
has been a good day. Our friendship groups are so different that they make
so much sense. I’m glad that he has good friends.
Yes, Evan can be a bit much but for the most part he’s tolerable. And
Xavier is just the sweetest person to level out their energies. He was
constantly trying to make sure everyone was okay all night, checking if the
girls were drinking too much.
I’m putting dirty dishes into the sink when Miles comes through from
the living room. He doesn’t say anything, he just stands beside me, waiting
for me to wash the plates then he dries them.
“Did you mean what you said earlier?” he asks in the midst of the
comfortable silence.
“What?”
“Earlier. About you wanting to kiss me even if we weren’t together. Or
pretending to be together.”
I can’t think of a reason to deny it anymore. There’s nothing that I could
say or do that could combat this feeling I’ve had inside me since I met him
at the party. Since he let me into his life and completely changed mine.
“Yeah, I did mean it,” I admit. He groans and when I look up at him, he
throws his head back dramatically. “What? Are you annoyed?”
“No,” he says with a slight edge. “I don’t know. I guess I’m a little
frustrated because you know how badly I want you. How badly I’ve wanted
you since the beginning. For real. But whenever I try to make a move, you
run away. Like you did the morning after the game.”
His voice is calm and levelled but his admission still shocks me. I try
and ignore the way my stomach crowds with angry butterflies when the
words leave his mouth. His eyes look hurt. “That’s a different thing.”
“Is it?” he asks, slight pain and irritation in his tone.
I open my mouth to speak but I’m interrupted by Xavier, Evan, and
Scarlett walking into the kitchen. The boys look absolutely fucked. I don’t
know when everybody got so drunk, but I was focusing on keeping myself
sober enough.
“If you’re staying for a bit, Miles, I’m going to drive these two home,”
Scarlett groans, patting Xavier on the chest. He makes a strange noise from
the back of his throat. "You guys gonna be okay?”
“Yeah,” I reply. I look up to Miles but he’s not looking at me. Panic
settles in me.
“Actually, I’m going to go too,” Miles says, walking away to get his
jacket. Scarlett nods as she opens the door. I walk toward him, trying to
reach for his hand but he pulls it away.
“Miles,” I breathe. He turns around to me, his expression hard. “You’re
still picking me up tomorrow, right?”
He comes closer towards me and kisses me on the top of my head.
“Yeah. I’ll be here.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 29
MILES
We only have a week. Seven days. Monday until Sunday. That’s all
we get. This is all the time I get with her until next year and things start to
get more serious for the both of us. That’s why when we’re on the plane and
Wren falls asleep, I make a plan of what to do to make this a really good
vacation. A much-deserved break for her. I book us in for massages, hikes,
saunas, and I look around for a nice restaurant to go to.
I’m really cutting deep into my savings for this, but I need to do
something nice. A grand gesture of some sort. There’s a bar having a New
Year’s Eve party that we can go to too. Maybe this is all too much. Maybe
I’m in way over my head but I want to do this for her.
On the drive to the airport, on the plane and even when we drive from
the airport to the hotel, she ignores what happened last night. Her specialty.
Although, a part of me is planning on ignoring it too. I don’t want to ruin
these next few days because after this, we could be done. If my first few
games go well and she qualifies, we’ll have no reason to be doing this
anymore.
It’ll be over.
She’ll go back to skating regularly and I’ll go back to playing. I know
how she was before her performances when she avoided me, so I know the
same thing will happen again but even worse when competition season
comes around. Even if that happens and we’re over, the least I can have are
some memories to come back to. Something to hold on to.
By the time we check into the five-star hotel, we’re both exhausted. We
throw our bags down and settle in. This room is a lot bigger than the one
that we stayed in at the gala. Instead of a massive bedroom, the room is
smaller sized, but it has two huge bathrooms as each side of it. The kitchen
and living room are connected in another room, with the refrigerator filled
with drinks and snacks that Ms Hackerly probably asked for before it was
cancelled for her and Mike.
We spend the first few days in a haze, going through all the things that I
booked for us to do. We go for massages, mostly for Wren. Hearing her
moan with pleasure didn’t help when I had mine right next to her.
We spend our days out in Palm Springs, visiting the most touristy places
we can, and we spend our nights binging bad movies and eating room
service, talking about everything and nothing.
I could get used it though.
Both of us sat in robes, eating ice cream, slouching on the couch,
watching movies. Sometimes, she talks about whatever book she’s reading
and I’m only half listening. I just like watching the way her mouth moves.
If she’s picked up on it, she hasn’t made it obvious.
This morning, we decided to go down to the beach to read. Although,
I’m doing more staring than I am reading. I'm lying on my back, slightly
angled towards Wren who’s lying on her stomach, her head propped up on
her bag while she reads. The sun has blessed her with small dark freckles
along her back and arms and I'm fucking obsessed with every single one of
them.
She’s wearing a lilac bikini with a white knitted cover up. She looks
ethereal. Effortlessly so. I don’t think I could tear my eyes away even if I
wanted to. She looks heavenly. Peaceful. Being with her is like watching
the ocean crash against the shore. It's like looking straight into the fucking
sun.
Looking at her now, you wouldn’t guess the number of snarky
comments she said to me in the past four months.
“Can you stop ogling?” she asks without looking up from her book. I
pick up mine and pretend to read it. I’m still figuring out how she does that.
I can’t, for the life of me, decide how she’s always able to catch me
watching without looking at me.
“I’m not ogling, I’m reading.”
“Really?” She turns to me, squinting her eyes, her head resting on her
hands. “What are you reading?”
“The McDavid Effect.” She snorts, smothering her laugh in her arms.
“What’s so funny?”
“It’s not funny. It’s… typical, that’s all.”
“What’s typical about a hockey player reading about hockey?”
“Everything.” I roll my eyes and grab the book out of her hands, and
she tries to reach for it.
“And what are you reading? Romance? Isn’t this the book that Kennedy
got for Christmas?”
“Yeah, she’s letting me borrow it. Give it back.” She tries to reach for it
again and looking adorable while trying to. I push my hand up higher so she
can’t see it. I skim the page she was reading, and I gasp loudly.
“Amelia Wren Hackerly, this is straight up porn.” Her face turns even
redder than it was earlier from the sun.
Every day, I learn something new about her. Like how she insists on
wearing panties and a tank top to bed, knowing I can’t touch her. And how
she loves to read romance novels with very explicit sex scenes.
“It’s not. Jasmine is a great author. She writes about her own real
experiences with love. It’s entertaining. You could learn a thing or two,” she
retorts as she snatches the book out of my hand, putting it into her bag.
“It’s filthy is what is,” I say, and she shakes her head with a soft laugh.
“How about this? Whatever you read now, I’ll do to you later.”
“Not going to happen, Davis,” she murmurs before turning her sun
kissed face away from me and resting back on her arms.
Well, it was worth a try.
*
“Why don’t we go out tonight?” I suggest one night after we’re both
tired from hiking on the Araby trail. I stand over her from the back of the
couch while she lies down, her eyes closed but she’s still awake.
“I’m exhausted, Miles. We’ve done, like, everything on everyone’s
bucket list ever in the last few days,” she says sighing deeply. She opens her
eyes, and pushes herself up on her elbows, looking at me.
“Don’t you want to go out for some real food? We’ve been living off
room service for four days,” I whine, as I walk over to her side of the
couch, and her eyes follow me.
“Aren’t we going out on New Year’s Eve? We can wait until then.”
“Yeah, but it’s going to be packed with people,” I groan as I crouch
down next to her, batting my eyelashes at her. “Don’t you want to go out
somewhere nice? Somewhere where we can eat good food. Just us. Just one
night, Wren.”
“Jesus, you’re so fucking dramatic,” she groans before standing up.
I'm feeling giddy as I go into one of the large bathrooms to get ready.
I’m lucky I packed a nice outfit in case something like this was to happen.
Okay, nice might be stretching it but it’s decent.
I try to brush out my hair, but it still looks wild. I’ve never known how
to deal with my curly hair, so it just does its own thing. I put on a white
button down and black pants, trying to look smart casual. I’m sure Wren is
sick of seeing me in jeans and hoodie and honestly, so am I.
I wait in the kitchen for her to finish getting ready because, as always,
she takes hours to get ready. I stick my head into the fridge to find
something but they’re only tiny bottles of tequila which doesn’t seem like a
smart idea right now. This feels like a night I want to remember.
“Ready to go?” a breathy voice from behind me calls.
I turn and the wind is knocked out of me. Literally. I think I’ve died and
come back to life.
Wren is dressed in a silky black evening gown with tiny straps. She
holds a silver purse in her right hand which matches with her stilettos and
earrings.
Her hair is slicked behind her ear as it falls onto her back. I have to back
myself up into the counter for stability, so I don’t fall over. I swear fucking
music starts playing as she walks towards me, painfully slowly.
Jesus fucking Christ she is incredible.
‘Cocktails for two’ by Betty Carter instantly comes to mind when she
gets closer to me. I blame Wren for her stupid headphones that meant I
could hear her jazz playlist on the whole flight.
“You look so beautiful,” I whisper, my voice sounding breathy and
almost unsure. She blinks up at me and I wrap my arms around her waist,
pulling her into me as if it’s the most natural thing in the world. My hands
feel so at home on her body. As if they just belong.
“So do you,” she murmurs. Watching her try to fight herself just makes
me want her even more. She stares at me as she takes in my outfit, her eyes
roaming all over me. God, I could sit down and let her look at me all day.
“Like, really, really good.”
“You know, for someone who complains about my ego, you sure do
feed it a lot,” I coo, and she throws me a funny look. She rolls her eyes as
she presses a kiss to my cheek before turning around and slipping out of my
grasp.
I got us a table at the hotel we’re staying at, so we only have to walk
down past the lobby, but I still hold her hand even though we don’t have to
pretend out here.
“What are you doing?” she asks, looking at our linked hands and then at
me.
“I just want to hold your hand,” I admit, squeezing her small hand in
mine. “That a problem?”
“No,” she says quietly and doesn’t bring it up again, latching onto my
fingers.
The restaurant is built to hover just over the LED pool with a cosy cabin
vibe. Our seats are on the patio outside, giving us a perfect view of the live
band who play smooth blues music. People gather around them, glasses in
their hands as they sway to the music under the sunset.
When we sit down, we both order steak and fries and a cherry blossom
lemonade. I’m starting to think that my bad eating habits have rubbed off on
her. We go through the never-ending list of questions to ask each other as
we eat.
“Okay,” she says, popping a fry into her mouth before scrolling through
my phone. “These are getting a lot deeper than the other ones. Is that
okay?”
“Sure. These are my favourite type of questions.” I grin at her, but she
frowns a little as she locks my phone and slides it over to me.
“What’s one thing you would change about your family if you could?”
She bites her bottom lip as if she’s regretting asking the question. I chew on
my steak for a few bites to think it over before answering.
“I wish my family were more upfront with each other. Instead of being
too scared to say things, y’know?”
She shakes her head gently. “Hm. What do you mean?”
“Like, I’ve always been a pretty dramatic kid. I would get really
attached to things. To people. And I wasn’t afraid to express that, but my
family have always been weird about it. My dad ignores things that he can
move on from, my mom pretends like they don’t exist and Clara… She
always finds some way to diminish my problems and to make them seem
smaller than they are. I don’t know, I think they just feel better hiding
things,” I admit.
As I said it out loud, my stomach twists as if I’ve just finished binging
McDonalds. I hate how uncomfortable it makes me. I hate how whenever I
talk about them, I can feel my chest tightening. That's why at the Christmas
dinner, I kept quiet.
Even when my dad and I were alone, we stuck to talking about sports
and boring things instead of what we were really thinking. I knew that if I
tried to say anything, I’d ruin the night. Or they’d back me up into a corner
and tell me to calm down. That I was overreacting. Wren’s quiet as she
waits for me to continue.
“I think they just find it easier to ignore problems. They’ve been
treading on eggshells around me since I found out about mom and since
Carter died. You know how much I talk. I can’t just do that. I can’t move on
easily and I can’t just ignore things that are clearly there. I know my parents
love each other but sometimes that doesn't feel like enough. They're not
happy. It's worse to be unhappy with somebody and still stay with them.”
“I’m sorry,” Wren says quietly. I shrug, smiling. “But you know you can
always talk to me, right? Even if it’s utter nonsense. I like hearing you talk.”
“You do know I’m going to use this against you in the future. You can’t
ever tell me to shut up again,” I joke. She smiles wide. “What about you?”
“I don’t like the pressure,” she says without missing a beat. She tries to
laugh but the noise doesn’t come out properly as she fiddles with her fork.
“Austin’s pregnant and she told me to tell my mom for her.”
I almost choke on my food. “What?”
“Yeah, she told me a few weeks ago. It was just after we, y’know, made
out. Anyway, that’s why I was so off with you before the show because I
was planning on telling her after. I had to do my absolute best so if I told
my mom, it would fly right over her head. Then, I saw her miss my
performance and I got angry, so I didn’t tell her and now here we are.”
I’m quiet for a moment, not knowing what to say. That’s really messed
up. I can’t imagine having that weight on your shoulders. She looks out at
the crowds of people, smiling softly at the music playing. Something in her
face changes when she speaks next.
“Do you want to know what the worst part is? She didn’t even think
about my side of it. Austin wanted me to tell her after the showcase because
she thought that if I told her then, she’d have all of her focus on me and
forget it. It’s like me skating trumps her getting pregnant. Like she knows
that mom would fixate on me instead of her.”
“That really sucks. I’m sorry. Do you know when you’re going to tell
her?” I ask after a while.
“I don’t know,” she sighs, falling back into her chair deeper. “I’m
hoping that Austin will suck it up and tell her herself. I can’t deal with that
kind of drama. Not so close to comp season.”
“Yeah, that’s fair.”
We both dig back into our food before it gets cold, neither of us asking
any questions before she sits up on her chair, her arms resting on the table,
her head in her hands. “Next question.”
“They just get worse,” I say, picking up my phone to scroll through it.
“I’m a big girl, Milesy. I can handle it.” She gives me a wicked grin as
she nudges me under the table. I push back, chuckling at her.
“Okay.” I close my phone, mirroring her position. “Do you believe in
love?”
“That’s easy,” she laughs, pushing her hair over her shoulder before
giving me a dead look. “No.”
“What do you mean ‘no’? You look like a person who does.
Considering the kinds of books, you're always reading.”
“Oh, don’t get me wrong, I love love. Does it exist? Sure. But do I want
it? Definitely not.”
Her candour shocks me. This whole time I thought she was a romantic
underneath all the stubbornness. A hopeless one at that. I thought that after
reading all those romance books, she’d aspire for that. That she would crave
it. Hope for it at least. She looks out to the band again, her eyes not braving
mine, as they play ‘At Last’ by Etta James with wicked timing.
“I love the idea of love. The way it’s written about in books and in
movies. But actually, being in love — it’s scary. It’s all consuming. Falling
in love is so easy but it’s just as easy to fall out of it. My parents did. They
acted like everything was fine. They went on pretending. And then just one
day, it was gone. All the sparks, all the reason they had to stay together just
seized to exist. I don’t want that. I don’t want to be constantly waiting for
the day my partner doesn’t want me anymore. The torture. The anticipation.
I just couldn’t live like that.”
“Yeah,” I say quietly. “I get that, but I don’t think you should be scared.
It’s a powerful thing; being in love. We’re young and we’re going to feel
things that are more than lust and sometimes the only word to describe that
is love.”
She turns to me now, tears lining her eyes. “Can’t there be another
word? We use the word love for everything. I love my friends. I love my
shoes. I love this food. It doesn’t mean anything anymore. Can’t there be
something that has the same meaning, carries the same weight but doesn’t
feel indefinite. Binding. Something that doesn’t have to tie you down to that
person and suddenly change everything. When you’re in love with a person
romantically, you can’t go back. But when you change your mind, as
humans do, it becomes a big thing. But I guess that’s what people want
though. Something tangible to change in their relationship. To make it more
serious or some shit.”
We both look at each other for an extended moment. The way her brain
works blows my mind and I'm obsessed with it. I want her brain. Her mind.
Her everything. Anything that she’s willing to give me. I wait for her to
continue. There’s something lost in her eyes, something distant as she
doesn’t break eye contact with me.
“If I ever feel anything remotely close to being in love, I just want to
exist with that person. I don’t want to ruin it by binding us together by a
word. An emotion.”
I'm shellshocked for a moment, not sure what to say. This girl has
flipped around nearly every single thought that I had about her. I finally
muster up the courage to ask, "Did that mean you were never in love with
Augustus?"
She shakes her head. "Not really. I knew he loved me and I appreciated
it. I knew I had some strong feelings for him but I didn't want to let us fall
into that."
I nod. "Do you think you feel this way about love because you feel like
you don't trust it or because you don't deserve it?"
"Both?"
"Well, that's bullshit, Wren. You're worthy of everything good in this
world."
She still holds eye contact with me but I see the way her eyes glimmer.
"Even love? Even if it breaks my heart?"
"Esepecially love," I say, "even if it breaks your heart."
We're quiet for the rest of the day. Neither one of us wanting to say
more than a few words after we just bled out our emotions onto the table.
Something shifted. I don’t know when or how but something else had
changed between us. Like the string that was holding us together has pulled
us even closer without us realising. The silence that could be
uncomfortable, feels welcoming.
Even after we’re back in the hotel room, sat on the couch watching New
Girl re-runs, we don’t say much. When we get into the bed, practically
meters separating us, our backs to each other, she finally breaks the silence.
“Do you think I’m insane?”
“What?” I ask.
“Do you think I’m insane for not believing in love? You always say that
- that I’m insane. Don’t you think it’s weird that I’m scared?”
“No. I think it’s smart. Practical.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 30
wren
“Surfing?” Miles asks when we’re on opposite ends of the huge couch
in the hotel room. He's flicking through a list on his phone while I try to
finish reading my book. Which I’ve been trying to do for the last two hours
but he won’t stop bothering me.
“No,” I say again.
“Yes.”
“No.”
“Maybe…?” he says, leaning over and pulling my book from my
hands, grinning at me. “Come on. You’re only in Palm Springs once.”
“I could be here next week if I wanted to.”
“Right, I forgot. Scarlett said that you’ll sugar momma me if I’m good.”
“I never said I’d be bringing you along if I came back,” I retort,
narrowing my eyes at him. “Do you really want to go surfing?”
He nods, suddenly excited like a puppy. “More than anything.”
“Fine but I want to be back here before lunch time.”
*
We don’t make it back before lunch time. In fact, we don’t make it back
until the surf instructor has had enough of us and the sun starts to set. Miles
somehow managed to rope me into surfing with him. We were both terrible
at it and it only got worse when the instructor suggested we tried tandem
surfing. I can't tell if I’m disgusted or impressed with Miles’ determination
to actually catch a wave. We were out there for what felt like hours, sweaty,
sticky, hot and every other disgusting feeling you get after being out in the
sun all day.
Instead of going back to our room like I suggested so we could order
room service, I’m being dragged down a street to a bar, still in my skirt
cover up and bikini top while Miles is shirtless in his swim shorts.
“I need to shower properly. Please don’t tell me we’re about to eat
here,” I groan, letting Miles pull my exhausted body into the near-empty
bar. I take a look around and it’s a nearly deserted space with a few people
scattered around and a karaoke machine in the corner. “No,” I breathe out.
“Oh yes, Wrenny,” Miles says, pulling me into the dance floor.
“Is it Opposite Day or something because it feels like you’ve been
ignoring everything I’ve said no to all day,” I say and he pulls me into him.
He doesn’t say anything as he winks over to someone at the bar. “Miles
Middle-Name Davis, what are you doing?”
“Harlan,” he says, wrapping one arm around my waist and clasping his
other hand in mine.
“What?”
“My middle name is Harlan,” he explains and I snort. “Don’t ask. I have
no idea where my mom got that name from. I think she was expecting me to
turn out to be some big CEO or something.”
I laugh, throwing my head back. “It’s cute. It’s giving hardcore grandpa
vibes.”
“Glad to know it’s grandpa names that get you going,” he starts,
spinning me out and then pulling me back into him. We’re not even
dancing properly to the kind of fast paced music that is playing but it’s too
fun to care. “And not my amazing looks.”
“You’re so full of yourself. You know that?” I say, laughing as he makes
me spin again.
“You could be full of me too if you’re nicer to me,” he retorts and I gag.
“I’m kidding. Rule number three and all that.”
“Glad to know that it’s you putting your dick inside me that will breach
rule number three and not this very romantic, very up-close dance we’re
doing,” I say when the song changes to a slow, smooth jazz. He pulls me
into him, placing his hands on my hips as I rest my head on his shoulder,
basically melting into him.
“This,” he says, gesturing between us, still holding onto my hands, “is
only whatever you want to call it, Wren.” He continues to sway us, out of
beat, to the music.
“That’s not confusing at all,” I murmur, wrapping my arms loosely
around his neck. I almost forget that we’re both practically naked, our
sweaty skin clinging to each other until my front is flush against his. God,
has he always felt and smelt this good? Even after spending all day at the
beach. Because right now, I could die in his arms as he holds me like this.
“Can I ask you something?”
“Anything.”
“And you’ve got to be honest with me,” I warn, listening to the rhythm
of his heartbeat.
“Always.”
I take in a deep breath. “Would I sound stupid if I said that I want to
stay here forever?”
“I think that’s the best thing you’ve said to me all day, Wren,” he
whispers. “You don’t have to follow it up by explaining to me how you
mean it in a platonic way or because we’re pretending to date because I get
what you mean. In whatever way you meant that, I’m right there with you.”
“Okay, good.”
“Great.”
“Perfect.”
“Do you have any hobbies other than skating?” he asks and I look up at
him, testing my chin on his chest. “I know that was a real one-eighty but
I’ve been thinking about it and I want to know.”
I nod, resting my head back down on his chest. “I like to read. A lot.”
“And you find that…fun?”
“It’s the best. Getting lost between pages, finding myself within
characters and getting so caught up that you forget to look outside for a
second. It’s the best type of consuming feeling. Don’t you ever feel like that
about something that isn’t hockey?” I ask
“I feel like that about music. I think,” he says. “Maybe not as intensely
as you do but I do enjoy listening to music. Sometimes it’s the way certain
songs sound and how it makes me feel and other times it’s the words that
are so well written. But most of the time it’s both.”
It feels like my heart is expanding. Is that possible? Or is that even a
real thing? Because when Miles speaks to me it feels like my heart is about
to burst out of my chest because not only is it beating so fast, but because
it’s being talked to, cared for and understood so deeply that it just wants to
jolt right out.
“That’s why you made that playlist for me that you didn’t really make
for me,” I tease, remembering the amount of adorable songs I found on
there.
“Exactly,” he concedes through a laugh. “What’s your favourite song?”
I think about it for a second. I change my favourite song the same way I
change my outfits. It depends on what mood I’m in or where I am. “Right
now, it’s Carry On by Norah Jones..”
He laughs a little, pulling away from me to hold me at arm's length.
“You’re going to have to sing it for me because I don’t know it.”
“I already told you, Davis, I can’t sing,” I say, shaking my head.
“If you do one, I’ll do one,” he says, walking over to the karaoke
machine. He holds out the microphone to me. “Deal?”
I grab the mic off him. “Fine.”
I stand next to the machine, looking at the tiny screen for the lyrics,
mentally preparing myself for embarrassment. It’s only Miles and a few
other strangers in here but it feels like everyone’s eyes are on me. Even if
there were a hundred people in here, I’d only ever be able to feel him.
He stands across from me, his ankles crossed and his arms folded across
his tanned chest, grinning. I start to sing; not my best but it’s something. I
even do a little dance between the small interludes of piano and Miles
dances along with me, clearly enjoying watching me let loose. It’s so easy
to just be with him like this that it worries me. But also knowing that at the
end of the day, it’s his bed that I’m going to be crawling into and his arms
that are going to wrap around me even when they shouldn’t. Because, here,
we’re untouchable. And whatever we do or say is going to be contained into
this tiny bubble we’ve built.
When my song’s over, Miles takes the floor, psyching himself for the
song he’s chosen. He does a mini warm up, jumping up and down and
pretending to crack his neck before the song starts. Immediately, when the
song starts, I burst out laughing. Obviously, because Miles is Miles, he
chose ‘My Shot,’ from Hamilton the musical.
He can’t fucking sing to save his life, I’ve known that. But he can sort
of rap?
I watch as he has the whole room’s eyes on him while he raps every
single line of the song. It’s not many but it makes this whole thing feel like
a real performance. I’ve never seen him so at home. I never would have
pegged him for a theatre kid but from the way he’s clearly memorised these
lines, I might have been wrong about him. He keeps his eyes on me the
entire time, giving an Oscar-worthy performance, pointing at me at any
chance he can get until I’m crying-laughing so hard that I need to sit down.
I don’t know how I didn’t realise it earlier. Maybe weeks ago when he
picked me up from that bar and looked after me but I might, actually, have
real feelings for this boy. Like, feelings I definitely should have. The kind
of feelings that I have not only between my legs but also in my chest.
Which is extremely dangerous for so many reasons.
When his five minute rap is done, he stumbles towards me, out of breath
and chest heaving. “That was the most tiring workout I’ve ever done in my
life,” he says, falling into me.
“Okay. Come on, big boy,” I say, pushing his weight off me and onto
the bar stool beside me. “I’m hoping that five minutes isn’t how long you
always last.”
He gasps, holding a dramatic hand to his chest. “Are you making a sex
joke?”
“No,” I say, fiddling with my straw in my lemonade..
He tuts at me, shaking his head. “Didn’t want to get me a drink?”
“And miss that toe curling performance? No way,” I say, pushing his
drink towards him. “You can have mine.”
“Wow, Wren. Making sex jokes and letting me drink some of your
drink? If I didn’t know any better, I'd think you’re finally warming up to
me.”
“You don’t know any better,” I murmur. “Plus, I warmed up to you a
long time ago. It just took a vacation and a day full of surfing for me to
show it.”
“Nah, I think I figured you like me more than you’d admit when you
kissed me,” Miles retorts, sipping on my drink.
“Are we talking about the same kiss because I remember you were the
one who begged for it,” I say, my cheeks flashing at the memory.
“Okay, fine. I'm admitting it because I’m not afraid to deny the fact that
I wanted you badly that night and you let me have you,” he whispers so low
that I can feel it in my stomach.
All I can focus on is that night because that is all it was. It was a
moment of weakness. We were both turned on and reckless. That’s it. It
might have driven me insane for weeks but I’m over it now. We’ve got a
more important task at hand
*
When we get back into the hotel, Miles immediately hogs the bathroom,
desperate to get the smell off him. Surprisingly, I’ve become comfortable in
my sticky bikini top over the past few hours and I don’t want the smell of
the beach - or the smell of him - to come off me just yet. Instead, I sit
outside on the balcony, letting the last of the summer breeze flow through
my hair.
I pull up my phone and call Kennedy, knowing that she should be with
Scarlett right now. They pick up on the second ring, their bright faces filling
up the screen.
“Hiiii,” Kennedy says. “We miss you!”
“I miss you guys too,” I say, smiling at them. “What are you guys
doing?”
“We just came back from Miles’ house. Apparently hockey players
want to party every night. You should know the kind of lifestyle you’re
getting yourself into,” Scarlett warns.
“Well, it depends on how long you’re planning on keeping this up for,”
Kennedy says, trying to keep her whole face on the tiny screen.
“Yeah. I’m not exactly sure where we’re going with this,” I say,
glancing back into the bedroom to make sure he’s still in the shower. When
I turn back to the screen, both of the girls are looking at me concerningly.
“What does that mean?” Scarlett asks.
“You guys have to promise not to kill me,” I say. They both cross their
hearts, holding up their Boy Scout promise.
Before I can speak, Kennedy pipes up. “You’re falling in love with him,
aren’t you?”
My eyes widen and I turn down the volume on my phone. “No! God.
What? Don’t be ridiculous.”
“You totally are,” Scarlett adds in.
“I’m not,” I say as confidently as I can. “I just like him a lot more than I
thought I would, okay? He actually listens to me and makes me feel valued
and seen. He forced me to go surfing with him and then we went to a bar to
do karaoke and I think I’ve had one of the best days of my life.”
“And your tan is looking gorgeous,” Scarlett says, pulling the phone
closer to her face. “I bet those freckles are driving him insane.”
“I don’t know. I haven’t-”
“You’re getting off topic,” Kennedy chimes in. “Are you going to tell
him?”
“What are you? Stupid? I’m not going to tell him anything. I don’t even
know what I would say. It’s not like they are even real feelings anyway,” I
say, trying to convince myself.
“Who said they’re not real? Because if your telling yourself that then
you’re fucking stupid,” Scarlett says and I hate how right she is. “Don’t tell
him if you don't want to but don’t you dare invalidate your own feelings. If
you don’t know what those are yet, that’s cool. But that doesn’t mean you
have to pretend you’re not feeling them.”
I nod, taking in her advice. “When did you get so wise?”
“I always have been, you’re just too stupid to realise it,” she says with a
shrug. “Anyway. We’ve got to go and binge-watch Love Island. We’ll see
you in a few days.”
I say my goodbyes and end the call, trying my best to listen to what
Scarlett says. I hate how she’s able to see right through me and understand
exactly what it is that I need. I don’t need to tell him right now but I do need
to figure out my feelings before they start to turn into something bigger. The
glass door to the balcony opens and I flinch, turning around to a freshly
showered, topless Miles who is leaning against the door frame.
“Hey. You okay?” he asks, crossing his arms against his chest. “You
seem a bit jumpy so I’m guessing there’s going to be no scary movie
tonight.”
I laugh. “No, because then I’d have to put up with your screeching.”
“That was one time,” he says. It was more than once but I don’t say that.
He scratches his stomach, my mouth practically salivating. “Are you
hungry?”
“What?” I say, snapping out of my trance.
“I asked if you were hungry,” he says, coming closer to me. He places
his hand on my forehead. “You sure you’re okay? Are you sick?”
I shake my head, letting his hand fall. “I’m perfect, Doc. Just tired. All
that singing and surfing has really got to me.”
My face splits into a huge yawn and so does his. “Me too. I’ll set up the
TV in the room and we can have an early night.”
He walks back into the room and I’m left with no idea what to do.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 31
WREN
I don’t know how we got here. I don’t know how I went from wanting
to rip his head off at that party a few months ago to be in a bar, in Palm
Springs, on New Year’s Eve with Miles Davis. The strangest part isn’t that I
don’t know, it’s that I don’t care.
For some reason, being here, in a crowded bar with Miles’ hand on my
back doesn’t make me scream. It makes me want to melt into him. We don’t
have to pretend here so is that why it feels so real?
The last week has been heaven. I know I should be training and
preparing myself for comp season but I’m sure I can spare a week. I deserve
a week. We’ve spent the past few days, eating, talking, travelling and doing
more talking. I learnt a lot about him and myself being here than I have in
the last four months of knowing him.
We have still tried to keep up with working out and using the gym in the
hotel, but we stay for an hour at most before running back to the room or to
the beach. It feels like nothing can touch us here. All the pressure, the
stress, the grief. It feels like the world is at our fingertips. Or maybe I’m just
starting to feel the shots we took earlier.
It’s half an hour until midnight and we’re standing at a bar, trying to
speak over the loud music that’s reverberating off the walls.
“What was that?” Miles basically shouts in my ear, his hand on my
waist, leaning his face to mine.
“I said that I’m going to stop with being strict on drinking,” I shout back
to him. A crooked grin splits across his face.
“Really? That’s your New Year’s resolution?”
“Yeah. I kind of like how it feels now. I feel like I’m floating,” I say.
“You’ve had, like, two shots, Wren. I hate to be the one to break it to
you but you’re a lightweight.”
“I’m not!” I shout, pushing him gently in the chest.
“I put some water in your bag. Drink some, please. Do you want to go
somewhere quieter?” Miles asks, moving me with him as we walk around
the room. If I could form real thoughts, I would thank him for being so
responsible. For taking care of me. He searches around for a way out.
“Does such a place even exist?” I ask.
“There’s a small room over there.” Miles points down a corridor with
brighter lights than the dark ones in the main bar. I stand still, not willing to
go down the sketchy hallway. He turns around and looks at me, puzzled.
“I think that’s where all the orgies and murders happen,” I say,
shuddering.
“There’s only one way to find out, Wrenny,” he smiles. “I got you.”
But as we start walking someone shouts his name. He looks back at me,
thinking it was me who called him. I shake my head and shrug.
“Miles!?” the shrill voice from behind us shouts again. We both turn
this time. A dark-haired woman walks towards us in a bejewelled silver
dress, and I instantly recognise her. My stomach tightens.
Miles has never been closed off about his ex-girlfriend, Emily Fraser.
Mostly because she comes up a lot when he talks about Carter. She’s short-
ish woman with dark brown hair that cuts off at her shoulders. She studies
marine biology at Drayton so she’s smart and gorgeous. She's the opposite
of me and I can't figure out of that's a good thing or not. I take a little step
back and Miles’ strong hand wraps around my waist, pulling me into his
side.
“Oh my God, it is you!” she shrieks and before either of us can register,
she pulls Miles into a hug, his hand slipping off me. As if I’m not there.
“It’s good to see you, Emily,” Miles says when she pulls away from
him. His hand returns to me again. “This is Wren. My girlfriend.”
“So, I heard,” Emily says as she gives me a once over. Her fake smile
doesn’t even reach her eyes. She turns back to Miles, ignoring my presence.
“Are you staying in town for a bit?”
“Yeah, only until Monday. Our flights in the evening,” Miles explains.
“Aw, that’s tomorrow. If I had known we could have hung out,” she
groans.
She comes closer to him, her hand resting on his chest. Okay. So, we’re
doing this. Miles doesn’t look at her. In fact, he looks straight over her head.
It doesn’t take a genius to know that she’s drunk and he’s too nice to tell her
to do one.
“I miss you. I miss your body,” she whines and that’s where I draw the
line. I grab her hand and push it off him and push her back gently.
“Hi, I’m sorry but I’m right fucking here. If you wanted to flirt with my
boyfriend, you could have at least waited until I slipped away for a
second,” I say, coming into her face.
The darkness of the bar and the LED lights have given me a lot more
confidence than I should have. I’m lucky I just about tower over her in my
stilettos or else I’d look ridiculous.
“Miles, can you tell your girlfriend to chill?” Emily scoffs. She blinks
up at Miles, but he steps back away from her, pulling me into him again.
“No, she’s right,” Miles says, looking at me and then back to her. “You
don’t have the right to say shit like that anymore."
"I can say what I want," she retorts, spluttering.
Miles groans, lowering his voice so only we can hear. "And Emily,
you're lucky I'm talking to you nicely because the last thing you deserve is
nice. I don't want to shout at you and cause a scene because I'm a decent
human. So please, step back so me and my girlfriend can leave."
She blinks at us and I want to laugh so badly.
“Happy fucking New Year,” I say to Emily before grabbing the cuffs of
Miles’ shirt and getting us the hell out of there. I know it was a petty thing
to say but it made my blood boil. Exes like that are not good for anybody.
The kind of ones who want you back when you’ve moved on. That shit
sucks.
We wait outside of the bar for a cab, not saying anything as we sit down
on the sidewalk. There is something comforting about being around Miles
in this setting, watching cars drive past and drunken strangers howl behind
us. He's sitting next to me, sighing loudly as he throws his head back,
probably as frustrated as I am.
"Thank you for doing that," I say quietly. I don't know how it came out
but it's New Year's Eve and I'm feeling emotional.
"Doing what?" he asks, turning his head to me.
"For not pretending I wasn't there," I reply.
"Why would I do that?" he asks, sounding genuinely confused. I shrug.
"Have people done that to you before?"
"Not on purpose," I admit. "I've always felt like I take up too much
space because I do so many things that people find interesting. But, when I
was with Augustus, it was like he was trying to compete with me. Like he
wanted to make me feel small and insignificant. Sometimes, he'd just
pretend I wasn't there."
The words fall out of my mouth at a stupid pace, spilling all my secrets
like it's nothing. It's definitely the darkness. I don't like oversharing this
much but with Miles, it seems to easy.
What shocks me that he pulls me into a tight side hug, his strong arm
tightening around me and I fall into him for a second. "I would never do
that to you, Wren. Ever."
Miles and I don't hug. We kiss and we hold hands when people are
around. But we never hug. It always feels too intimate. Like were crossing a
line.
*
We go back to the hotel mostly in silence, walking past people as they
go down to get ready for the countdown in the lounge. We go back to our
room, standing outside on the balcony, watching the early fireworks that are
being set off down the horizon. It’s not long before the new year’s about to
start.
“That was hot,” Miles says nudging me with his shoulder as we lean
against the railing, looking out into the darkness. I turn to him and laugh.
“You’re like a horny teenager. You think everything is hot,” I scoff.
“I am a horny teenager," Miles challenges. Barely, I want to retort but
instead I snort and he smirks, adding, "Only when you do it.”
“Someone needed to get her in line,” I murmur. He turns his body to
me, his left arm resting on the railing. I mirror his position and I shudder as
I say, “I hate that it made me so mad.”
“Can’t you just admit that you wanted to defend me? That you, not my
fake girlfriend, but you wanted to defend me,” Miles says. His fiery
expression catches me off guard as he closes the space between us.
“What are you talking about?” I breathe. Are we really doing this right
now?
“Why can’t you just admit that you want me — like you said at
Christmas? That you want me for real. Just as badly as I want you.”
“Miles,” I whisper, a half plea.
He steps closer towards me, our noses grazing each other, as his breath
hitches. “Tell me, Wren. Does this feel fake to you?”
I don’t say anything. What could I say? Each day being around him, it
gets harder and harder to deny the heavy want building inside me. That I’m
low-key annoyed that I didn’t bring my Christmas present with me. That the
past few days have been the most fun I've had in my life. That being with
him makes me better. Happy. Whole.
The countdown to new year's begins outside.
Ten.
“Miles… I can’t want you. You know that.”
Seven.
“I’m not asking what you can and can’t do. I’m asking you what you
feel. What do you want, Wren?”
Two.
“I want you,” I whisper. One. Fireworks explode beside us as he grabs
my face and pulls me into him, catching my lips with his.
Something magical and indescribable happens when our lips meet. I
gasp at the suddenness of the kiss, and he uses the opportunity to slide his
tongue into my mouth. I can feel myself floating. As if we’re existing
outside of this moment. Maybe it’s the alcohol I had earlier or the heat
between my legs, but I feel myself slipping away.
He pushes my head back lightly, deepening kiss as I whimper into his
mouth at the force of him. He’s not rough but it’s hard enough that it shocks
me a little and makes the intensity in my lower stomach build. He tastes
sweet. Like cinnamon.
When I realise my hands have fallen limp at my sides I reach up for the
nape of his neck, curling my fingers into his hair. He guides us to the railing
and pushes my back against it which is good so he can't see the scars and
bruises that I've got n my back over the years. Too many training days gone
wrong and too little time to explain that to him.
I come up for air, the wind blowing into my face as I tilt my head back.
This time, I go back in gently, my teeth skimming his bottom lip. He smiles
into the next kiss, even when his warm mouth touches mine, I can still feel
him smiling.
God, we’re barley even kissing anymore as we just smile at each other
like goofy high school kids and I love it. One of his hand’s snakes around
my waist, pulling me into him, my dress getting caught in the wind. It’s
then that I can feel how wet I am. How much it’s dripping between my
thighs.
“Let’s go inside,” I pant when I can get a second to breathe. He
responds by picking me up from the waist and wrapping my thighs around
his middle.
While he carries me into the bedroom, I kiss at his neck, inhaling his
cologne. He drops me down onto the edge of the bed, my dress pooling
beside me. I quickly reach down and slip off my sandals as he unbuckles his
belt. I lay back down, staring at the ceiling, waiting for whatever to happen
to happen.
This is a good idea, right? We could do this, get it out of our systems
and if this plan works, I’ll never have to see him again. No matter how bad I
want to.
“Are we doing this?” Miles asks, kneeling down in front of me,
basically reading my thoughts. I push up on my elbows and nod frantically,
panting. “Wren. It’s fucking great that you’re enthusiastic, but I need you to
tell me with your words.”
“Yes. Yes. We’re doing this, Miles,” I say. Only he can make consent
sound so hot. He pulls the material of my dress upwards, just exposing my
thighs but he hesitates at the foot of the bed. “Do you need some help?”
He laughs, shaking his head before staring at me for a long moment.
Without being able to process it, his hot mouth presses a kiss onto my
thighs, making me squirm. He presses featherlight kisses along one thigh
before moving to the next. It’s so slow. Drugging. One of his hands wrap
behind the back of my thigh, tugging it around his chest while the other
splays across my breast. On top of my dress unfortunately. He kisses up my
thigh until he gets to where I want him the most, but he doesn’t go all the
way. Instead, he makes his journey back down.
“Miles. If you’re not going to put your mouth where I want it, I’m going
to deal with it myself,” I groan after he brings his mouth to the edge of my
panties three times without doing anything. I look down to him, but I can
only see his hair, his face buried deep into my thighs. That’s what I like to
see.
“You’re very impatient,” he mumbles against my skin. “I’ve been
waiting for this since I met you so I’m going to savour it.”
“How do you think I feel? My vibrator can only do so much,” I whine.
He laughs into my thigh again, tickling me. He still doesn’t move anywhere
near my panties. Finally, I stand up and he falls back onto his heels, looking
up at me. “You’re taking too long.”
I reach behind me, struggling slightly, as I reach for my zip and drop my
dress down to my ankles. His mouth falls open when he notices I’m not
wearing a bra as I stand there in nothing but my pink panties. The cool chill
of the wind hits me, and my nipples go hard. He’s still shell-shocked when I
bend down and start to unbutton his shirt.
“I can do it myself,” he mumbles when he gets his voice back, blinking
up at me.
“Can you?” I cock my head to the side with a smug grin and he hums.
He shrugs off his shirt and takes off his jeans, until we’re both stood
there with nothing but our underwear. I take my time to memorise the
curves of his tanned chest with my fingers, feeling him tense beneath me.
I’m about to make a snarky comment but he brings his hands around my
waist. The skin-to-skin contact makes all my nerves and senses sing. I step
backwards slightly until the back of knees hit the bed.
“You’re so beautiful, Wren,” he whispers, and he presses an open
mouthed kissed to my chest, just above my breast. I gasp at how light and
tender the feeling is. “So, fucking, beautiful. I want to worship you.”
“Then do it if you're not all mouth.” I smile but my voice turns into a
yelp when he pushes me onto the bed. He climbs over me, looking at me
with a sexy, evil smile. He kisses me on the lips gently once before slowly
making his way down my body. His lips catch onto my nipple and a moan
slips out of my mouth. He laughs against my stomach, and I dig my heel
into his back as payback. His glorious journey down my body stops at the
waistline of my panties.
He looks up at me, dead in the eyes, as he hooks his fingers into the
sides and pulls them down. I wiggle slightly as he pulls them over my
ankles. I close my eyes, but he doesn’t move. For a second, I think he’s
moved off the bed, but I open my eyes and he’s just staring at my bare body
in front of him.
“What? Is, uh, something wrong?” I ask, wearily.
It’s been a long time since I’ve had anyone this close to my naked body.
Augustus and I had sex before but even the foreplay was nowhere near as
good as this. I never finished once with him. Well, to him he thinks I did but
it turns out I’m just really good at faking it. Miles looks between my legs
and then back up at me as he swallows.
“You’re soaking, Wren,” he says as if it isn’t obvious.
“Are you going to do something about it?”
Before I can even get my words out, his fingers slip inside of me in one
quick motion. My words turn into a moan at the sensation. I immediately
roll over him to cause more friction as he pumps in and out of me faster.
“Fuck, Miles,” I scream when his tongue moves over my clit. The
sounds that I can hear myself making mixed in with the slick sound of his
fingers inside of me are obscene. But exhilarating. His mouth and his
fingers move inside me in a practiced motion, as I squirm beneath him.
I grip onto the sheet, turning my head to muffle my cries into the pillow.
I had a feeling that feeling him inside me would be insane, but I could never
have imagined this. I can’t remember the last time I got this tuned on.
Actually, I can. It was that night at his house when he asked me to kiss him.
"Such a good girl," Miles murmurs into my skin, "So wet for me."
Is this what dying feels like? I'm willing to let it happen.
“Miles, I’m going to-”
Just as the words leave my mouth, his takes his fingers out of me,
leaving me throbbing even more. I look down at him, my chest rising and
falling. He keeps his eyes locked with mine as he puts his fingers in his
mouth, a low sound coming from the back of his throat as he slowly drags
them out. I can feel myself drowning at the sight of him.
He kneels off the bed and I sit up further to see what he’s doing. He
doesn’t take his eyes off me as he slides down his boxers. I gulp when his
dick springs free, dripping with pre-cum. Holy fuck. I scramble impatiently
to the end of the bed at the same time he crawls onto it. I grab onto his
shoulders and swing him down so he’s underneath me.
“What are you doing?” he laughs when I pin him down with my hands.
Slowly, I drag my hands down his stomach until I get to where he’s
straining. I circle my tongue around his tip before slowly slipping him into
my mouth and then back out, staring into his green eyes. “Jesus, Wren.”
I use my hands to pump up and down his length, gaining more grunts of
approval from him as I taste his saltiness. I fit more of him into my mouth,
my eyes almost watering. He threads his fingers into my hair, his face
pained with pleasure as he looks down at me.
I take him out of my mouth, dragging my tongue along his shaft. "Is this
okay? I've not really done this before," I admit.
He groans when I lower my mouth onto him again, gaining more of
him. The grip he has on my hair tightens when I start to suck faster, feeling
him deep in my throat.
"You're perfect. Just like this. Fucking perfect," he pants. He thrusts
himself down my throat until I'm gagging on him, loving the way he feels
and tastes.
"Fuck. I need to be inside of you.”
I don’t wait long before taking him out of my mouth and kissing up his
abdomen until I reach his face. I kiss tenderly along his jaw, lifting his head
slightly so I can whisper into his ear.
“Do you have a condom?” He nods his head and reaches down to get
his jeans. “I was kind of hoping you’d say no. Did you plan on doing this
before we got here?”
He gives me an evil grin when he sits back up in the bed, condom in
hand. “I knew you wouldn’t be able to resist me.”
I smother his words with a long kiss before sliding down him, taking the
condom with me. I straddle his thighs as I open the wrapper. I take it out but
and roll it onto him. I’m about to guide him into me but his hand covers
mine.
“What’s going to happen after?” Miles asks, his voice wavering.
“Nothing is going to happen.”
“What do you mean?”
“We’re going to do this right now. We could do it a million times until
our legs are numb but when we get back to Salt Lake we go back to
pretending, okay? We need to make sure you’re in the season for good and
that I can qualify for the championships. If whatever this is spills into what
we’re pretending, it could end really badly,” I say in a hurry, desperate to
get him inside of me.
“Would it? Or wouldn’t it be better? We wouldn’t have to pretend,” he
asks quietly. I try to let myself think about that idea but it’s really fucking
hard to think straight when his dick is inches away from me.
“Miles, can we not talk about this right now?” I ask, nodding to his
erection. He nods and takes his hand off mine, slipping them around my
waist. “I just want to...”
My words turn into a disgruntled moan when he slams me onto him in
one quick motion as he fills me up. I brace my hands on his chest as I roll
over him, my mouth hanging open as I pant. Once the first wave of pain
settles down, I melt into him. It’s almost as if our bodies were made to be
doing this with each other. We move in sync as he guides my hips around
him moving in circles and forwards and backwards. His hands dig into my
ass, and I gasp. It should be a crime for this to feel so good.
All the pent-up tension, the small touches, the stolen glances all led up
to this exhilarating high that I never want to come down from.
He thrusts into me deeper, his pace quickening as he leans forward to fit
my breast into his mouth. I moan his name louder than I’d like to admit. I
don’t even recognise how whiney and desperate I sound. I greedily grab
onto his hair, shoving his face deeper in between my breasts as his hips
thrust forward into me while he whispers into my skin. You feel so good,
baby.
If you keep talking, I’m going to finish right now, I whisper back. Good,
he says. The high ripples through us at the same time as I clench around
him, his name slipping out of my mouth. His thrusts become sloppier as his
orgasm soars through him, and he groans. Stars burst behind my eyes as I
collapse on top of his chest.
“I don’t think I’m going to be able to skate anymore if my legs don’t
work,” I pant, propping myself up on my forearms on his chest. He laughs a
little and kisses me on the forehead, our breathing still heavy.
When we settle down, I slip out of the bed to pee. To think. When I look
in the mirror, I see a puffy faced Wren blinking back at me. I almost want to
laugh at how insane this feels. I should be more concerned. After resisting
him for so long, I finally succumbed.
This could be the start of something dangerous. Something all
consuming. Something that we’ll both get attached to. A habit I won’t be
able to kick. The distraction that I can’t afford. Before I can splash water on
my face, Miles comes behind me in the mirror, his chin resting on my
shoulder. I lean into him, smiling in the mirror. He brings his hand around
my front, teasing my nipple.
“Round two?” he whispers into my skin.
I nod enthusiastically.
*
I collapse beside him again onto my back for what feels like the
hundredth time. Only this time I can actually feel myself falling asleep. It’s
well into the morning now and small slithers of sunlight are starting to peak
through the windows.
I look over at Miles for a second, watching his heavy breathing subside.
That’s when the weight of the day comes crashing down onto me. I
knew that if we do it once, we wouldn’t want to stop. And we’ve done it at
least plenty of times in several different places. When we get back home,
everything is going to be different. Everything will change. I roll over onto
my side, my back facing him.
“Miles?” I whisper. He responds by wrapping his hand around my
stomach, pulling me into him, his head nestled in my shoulder. “We really
broke the rule this time. I’m scared.”
“I’m here.”
That's it. Two words. A statement. A promise. A gift.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 32
MILES
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 33
WREN
I am able to see the future. All the goddamn time. I know things are
going to happen – bad things – but I still do them anyway. It’s like an
irritating feeling in my brain that I can’t ignore and have no choice but to
follow through with. I’ve seemed to have got used to making bad decisions.
I knew sleeping with Miles would be wild and exhilarating but I didn’t
expect the very low low I would experience afterwards.
This was a good distraction; spending our days going on small
adventures and our nights cooped up in the hotel, believing we were
untouchable. Believing that we could ignore every red flag but if we tried
hard enough, we could make them green. It was fun. And that isn’t
something I get to feel often. That free liberating feeling of not having to
worry about tomorrow, my diet or my training.
But when we slept together, something shifted. Sure, if we made out it
would be fine, we could go back to Salt Lake and pretend it didn’t happen
like we’ve done before. But this? This is something different. Something
substantial. He’s seen me naked for God’s sake. He has seen and touched
nearly every part of my body. This is something that we can’t ignore. Well,
something we can’t ignore any more than I’ve tried to.
As soon as I opened my eyes this morning, I knew I had to get out of
that room. I have to stop pretending like this is my life. That living off
room service and good sex was my lifestyle. I need to be in the rink, in the
gym, training and eating good. Instead of going for round who-knows-what
with Miles, I got my ass up, showered and got myself down to the beach
and tried to salvage some sort of calm.
With the qualifiers and the championships, the last thing I need is to
complicate whatever me and Miles have. As much as I tried to push it away,
I knew I was attracted to him from the beginning. A large part of me hoped
that we could just power through the next few months and push away all
our desires to focus on the task at hand. That was until the gala, the game,
Christmas – where things started to get real. When it was an intense
struggle to fight off the feelings between my legs. What's worse is that it's
not just his looks but it's everything about him. His selflessness, his support,
his care and the way he listens to me. Every fucking thing.
Despite my initial rule, and although ambiguous, Miles was the only
one to admit how he truly felt. He made that very clear since the beginning.
I was scared. I still am scared of falling into deep and forgetting everything
I have worked so hard on. Every time I’m around him, my self-control
shrinks and the little devil and angels on my shoulder disappear, leaving
behind a cloud of smoke. Being in a real relationship with someone like him
would be consuming, distracting and everything I can’t have right now. But
everything that a secretly want.
I know I ran off this morning, but I didn’t expect Miles to be gone too.
He’s probably freaking out as well. I finally finish cleaning up the bedroom
and packing away our things into our suitcases.
Strangely enough, Miles’ suitcase has very little clothes for the week
that we’ve stayed here compared to mine. I’m packing up the last of our
things, double checking the bathroom when somebody knocks on the door.
Before I know it, it swings open as I cross the living room in my denim
shorts and white tank top. My heart drops through my ribs as I take in the
sight in front of me. An elderly black lady with kind eyes in a flower
sundress stands in the doorway with a very sad and very drunk Miles on her
shoulder.
Oh, no. Miles, what have you done?
This is the first time I’ve seen him drunk in months. The lady looks
around the room before her eyes settle on mine and they soften. I rush over
to them, pulling Miles’ weight off her. He’s sweaty and a lot heavier than I
remember. He sinks into me, and I can smell the alcohol. My stomach turns.
“I’m so sorry to bother you. He was wandering around and he said that
he was staying here. You’re Wren, right?” the lady asks in a thick southern
accent. I nod, swallowing the lump in my throat. “Okay, good. He might not
look like it right now, but he said some really nice things about you. Take
care of him.”
“I’m sure he did, and I will,” I say, my voice sounding foreign as I look
down at him, his face buried into my chest. “Thank you so much.”
I try and keep calm as I walk with Miles’ arm over my shoulder, which
is hard to do when he’s a lot heavier and taller than me. He stays quiet as I
bring him into the bathroom.
This is why I don’t drink a lot. This is why I don’t like being around
people that drink because it brings out the worst in them. It gets out of
control and sometimes so out of control that a random person has to bring
you back to your hotel room. He has avoided my eyes since he got in here
and I don’t know how to act around him. What to say. How to make this
better. What makes this worse is that he’s a sad drunk.
I get some water from the fridge and bring it to the bathroom and
rummage for some painkillers in my bag. He stands, leaning against the
sink even though I’ve told him to sit down. He takes a few painkillers and
chugs half the bottle of water. Slowly, as if he knows what’s going to
happen, he bends down to the floor, leaning over the toilet and he throws
up. A lot. My stomach flips as I kneel next to him, rubbing his back while
he leans his head on his arm on the toilet seat.
“It’s okay. Just let it out,” I say, rubbing circles on his back. He doesn’t
say anything, just indistinct mumbles as he sits back up. What happened to
him? We have to get to the airport in two hours. He can’t be like this right
now.
He groans as he sits up, hopefully finished throwing up. I pull his arm
around my shoulder and wrap my hand around his middle to help him stand
up.
“C’mon, let’s get you in the shower.”
Like I expected, he doesn’t reply, just mumbles something in
agreement. When he’s able to stand, I stand across from him and part of me
wishes I couldn’t see his face right now. Tears that are staring to dry, streak
his pale cheeks. He catches me staring and his eyes shoot to the floor.
I inch closer, reaching my hand out to pull off his shirt. He helps me to
take of his shirt and his trousers. I lean over to turn on the shower as he
takes off his boxers and steps into it. He sits down, pulls his knees to his
chest, and rests his head on them. He looks so vulnerable that my heart
pinches. He’s always the one helping me. He’s supposed to be the fun one.
“I’m sorry. I’m so sorry, Wren,” he mumbles as I run the shower over
his hair and his back. I place my hand on his cheek, rubbing my thumb
under his eye. He melts into my touch. "I'm trying to be good for you, I
swear."
“I beleive you. You don’t need to be sorry. I shouldn’t have run away,” I
respond quietly.
“I thought…I thought you hated me. That you regretted last night and
that you didn’t want me — this — anymore. And I saw- I thought I saw
Carter.”
It feels like someone has taken a pin to my heart and deflated it. He
talks about Carter all the time, I’m not surprised that he thought he saw him,
especially when he’s intoxicated. I should say something. I should tell him
that it’s not true. To tell him that all I want is to be there for him. To make
sure he’s okay.
“We’ll talk about this later, okay? We need to get you feeling better
right now.” He nods, some of the colour coming back into his face as I run
my hand through his hair. “I’m here, Miles. I’ve got you.”
"You've got me?" he mumbles and my heart tears.
"I've got you."
We don’t talk much as I help him to feel better. After his shower, Miles
gets ready sluggishly and I order him some room service. He takes a few
more painkillers and once he’s eaten, he starts to look better. We don’t talk
about what happened. Why he went somewhere to drink or why he thought
he saw Carter. I don’t push him to tell me, so he doesn’t bring it up. I ran
away from the problem and so did he. In some ways, we’re both to blame.
His humour starts to return on the flight, along with his sobriety. He
makes continuous plane jokes which I can’t help but laugh at. Even while
I’m trying to watch The Lion King, he somehow managed to make terrible
puns out of every character that comes onto the screen. The only thing
missing, is the way he would make flirty jokes or try and touch me in some
way or another. It doesn’t feel real that it was less than twenty-four hours
ago that we couldn’t keep our hands off each other.
When we get back to Salt Lake, the winter air hits us as we run to find
an Uber to take us back to our houses. The second my body warms up to the
temperature in the Uber, we’re already outside Miles’ house and I’m struck
by another brush of cold air. Miles takes my luggage out of the car, along
with his and we walk up to his door.
I almost forgot it was New Year's Day until I take in all the decorations
in the house. Gold and silver banners hang from the ceilings and beer cans
and Solo cups litter the floor. I take notice of the makeshift photo wall that I
saw in Kennedy and Scarlett’s pictures from last night.
They were not happy with me missing New Year’s with them, but I
convinced them to go to Xavier’s party and from the way Kennedy was
cuddling up to Harry Butler I can tell they had a good night.
“Finally,” Xavier exclaims when he sees me and Miles. “Dude, it’s been
hell without you.”
“Can’t talk. Head hurts,” Miles mumbles, acting worse than he is. He
sulks and brings his drama queen ass up the stairs. I laugh and Xavier pulls
me into a side hug.
“What’s wrong with him?” he asks, looking at me with a funny look.
“He’s hungover. Kind of,” I reply with a shrug. He laughs and walks in
the other direction. I run up the stairs after Miles. He’s shuffling around in
his bathroom when I walk into his room.
“You’re such a drama queen, you know that right?” I shout to him as I
fall onto my back on his ridiculously comfortable bed. I’ve missed this so
much.
“I’m not. My head does hurt,” he whines, walking back out of his room
in nothing other than grey joggers. He sits beside me on the bed, his legs
crossed next to my head. I gulp, trying not look at his toned stomach. Miles
ignores the dismissive look I’m trying to give him as he leans over me.
“Are you going to stay here tonight?”
His lips are inches away from mine. I lean up on my elbows and press a
quick kiss to his lips and he smiles. I pull away, not ready to go any further
but his lips catch mine again in a passionate struggle. It feels so natural to
be this close to him after the week we’ve just had. My mind instantly
flashes to last night and the hundreds of other places his lips were.
“I think we both know that’s not a smart idea,” I breathe when I pull
away again. “I don’t think my body could take it and I miss my girls.”
“That’s true,” he laughs. He moves from over me and rests his back
against the windowsill next to his bed. I push myself up next to him. “I’m
sorry, Wren. About earlier. I was freaking out and the last place I should
have gone to was a bar. Especially after we’ve spent so much time trying to
avoid that. Thank you for taking care of me.”
“It’s okay. It’s my fault too. I shouldn’t have just left,” I admit. I turn
my head to him, but his heavy-lidded eyes are already on me. “I meant what
I said, Miles. I am scared. I know you said you’re going to be there but
what if one day you’re not? I can’t depend on someone for them to let me
down.”
My own rambling voice catches me off guard. It’s the first time I’ve
said that out loud. To him. Not everyone can understand that overwhelming
fear that constantly wells inside me when I’m around him and I’m close to
letting go. He pulls my hand into his lap and encloses his hands around
mine.
“No. That isn’t going to happen. Even if this is for the fake relationship
or our real relationship, I’m going to be there. I’m all in. For real,” Miles
says, turning over my hand in his. He traces the lines in my palm with a
long finger.
“I’ve got qualifiers coming up. Then the competition season begins, and
you’ve got the hockey team counting on you. If we do this and something
happens, we’re both going to go down. What did you call us? Falling stars?
That’s what’s going to happen,” I ramble, my voice wavering. “Aren’t you
worried about that?”
“Oh, I am,” he replies cheerfully. “But I know that this is what I want.
The good, the bad and the ugly. It'll be worth it.”
“What if you change your mind?”
“I’m not going to.”
“But what if you do?”
“I'm. Not. Going. To," he snaps, looking at me with fierce eyes.
He brushes a strand of hair out of my face. I nod but it’s still a hard pill
to swallow. It can be easy to say you’re not going to stop feeling this way,
but it happens. I’ve seen it happen right in front of me. It can dissipate in an
instant.
“Why don’t we take it light and breezy? If it makes you feel any better,
we can still keep the contract in effect but with some adjustments. If this
gets too much we’ll tell each other, okay?” Miles suggests. I nod. He holds
out his pinkie to me. “Promise?”
I link my pinkie to his. “Promise." I try and let the idea settle for a
second, wanting to believe him so badly.
"I know you're scared Wren and I know you have priorities. I would
never ask you to change them for me but I promise you, I'm here. Me and
you."
There it is again. Those two words.
I'm here.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 34
WREN
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 35
MILES
“I just can’t get over that shot. It was, like, completely legendary,”
Kennedy exclaims for the hundredth time.
Wren, Scarlett, and Kennedy came over to my place after the game to
hang out. Most of the team have gone to a much louder party but I knew
that Wren wouldn’t want to go to that. Instead, I told Grey, Harry, and
Xavier to stay here.
While we were in Palm Springs, it seems like they’ve all gotten a lot
closer without us which is good. Yet, as much as they’ve hung out,
Kennedy is still not over the way hockey works and how my shot wasn’t at
all ‘legendary.’
I was able to get in two goals while Xaiver and Harry got one in each.
Grey needs to learn how to chill more on the ice because he was in the
penalty box for half of the game. We all helped each other assist along with
Tyler and Bryan. It was a really good first game back.
“Calm down, Ken. You’re going to boost his ego even more,” Wren
says giving me a small smile. She leans her head into my neck as I wrap my
arms around her waist while she sits in my lap, wearing the shirt I got her
for Christmas. Across from us, Kennedy and Scarlett give each other
knowing glances.
“I don’t mind it one bit,” I say proudly. I turn to Wren. “It’s not like
you’ve even told me congrats since the game was over.”
Wren’s face turns red at my teasing. She has said 'well done'. Once with
a huge hug and a kiss when she ran up to me when the game ended when I
was all sweaty and gross and then again when we got home, on her knees in
my bedroom with my hand in her ponytail.
“It was a good game, though. It helped that they couldn’t play for shit
anyway,” Grey laughs. “They looked like they only just learnt how to
skate.”
Wren snorts. "You spent more time in the sin bin than you did on the
ice,” she retorts seriously, seeming genuinely disappointed with his
performance, and everyone laughs.
I look at her, unable to hide my grin and the raging hard-on. “What did
you just say?”
She tilts her head. “What? About the penalties?”
“Nah,” I tut, shaking my head. “I want to hear you say it again.”
“You want me to say ‘sin bin’ again? Is this a new kink of yours,
Davis?” she asks me innocently batting her eyelashes at me.
“It might be,” I admit, having to readjust my jeans. I lower my voice
and groan. “Fuck me.”
“I can make that happen.” She bites softly on my ear, and I press my
mouth in a line to suppress my groan. Does this girl enjoy torturing me?
“Uh, please don’t,” Scarlett cuts in grimacing.
“Yeah, please don’t. Can we move on past this? As much as I love
hockey, I don’t want to talk about it all the time,” Harry says, taking a swig
of his beer. “Let’s play truth or dare.”
All the girls look at each other and smile.
“Ugh,” Scarlett groans. “Been there and done that. Not the smartest idea
with this bunch.”
“Why not?” Harry asks, clearly oblivious to the 2021 Christmas
Incident.
“Because it brings out a lot of shit that no one needs to know about.
Like how, Scarlett had relations in the business classroom and how these
two can’t keep their hands off each other,” Kennedy explains with a waft of
her hand in our direction.
“That is not true,” Wren retorts, sliding off my lap and trying to sit
beside me but there isn't much space so half her leg is still on my thigh
anyway. She pulls her hands in between her thighs and squeezes them
together. “See?”
“See what? That you can last two seconds without making out,”
Kennedy says back, raising her eyebrows. “It’s got a lot worse since you
came back.”
“I second that,” Scarlett announces.
“Me too,” Xavier and Grey say in unison. Grey stands up and saunters
towards the kitchen, no doubt to raid my fridge. He’s going to be
disappointed when he notices that Wren threw out all of our junk food. He
fiddles with the speaker and changes the song to 'Save your tears,' by the
Weeknd.
“Whatever. At Christmas, it was a dare. It’s not like we were doing it for
no reason,” I say looking over to Wren who has got the biggest smile on her
face.
“Exactly. At least someone agrees with me.” She points at me, wiggling
her finger in my face. Instinctively, I gently bite at the end of her finger, and
she laughs, sliding back into my lap.
“You two are impossible,” Scarlett grumbles, slouching back in her seat
“Okay,” Harry draws out, looking at me and Wren before turning to
Kennedy. “Kennedy, truth or dare?”
“Didn’t we just say we’re not playing that?” Wren asks, bending over
me to look over at Harry.
“Yeah, we are but not with you two,” Harry replies nonchalantly,
returning his attention to Kennedy. Wren nods and snuggles herself deeper
into me. “Truth or dare?”
“Truth.”
“If you could have three wishes, what would they be?” We all start
laughing at how starkly different this question is compared to Evan’s ones
at Christmas. Kennedy rolls her eyes, pushing her long curly hair over her
shoulder.
“I’d wish for endless film in my camera, endless supply of ice cream
and… a little person, like an assistant, that can tell me endless conspiracy
theories, so I’d never run out.” Kennedy lifts her chin up and grins.
“That was a boring answer,” Harry says.
“It was a boring question,” Kennedy challenges, raising her eyebrow.
Harry shakes his head with a light laugh.
“Why are they all endless?" he asks.
“What would be the point of having wishes for them to run out?”
Kennedy responds but Harry shrugs. "Greyson! Truth or dare?"
Grey leans in the doorway of the kitchen, giving Kennedy that look that
he does when he's trying to flirt without really flirting. "Truth."
Kennedy pulls her bottom lip between her teeth, thinking for a moment
before saying, "What is one thing I don't know about you?"
"How much time I spend thinking about you," Grey drawls. All the girls
gag. Hell, I do too. "I'm kidding, Ken, jheez. Anyway, it turns out Evan is
not the only child prodigy. I play piano, too."
Scarlett's eyes widen. "Evan plays piano?"
Grey nods. "Yeah, he was born into like me. But, he takes it a lot more
seriously. I do it to impress the ladies." Grey winks at Wren and she snorts.
"Thank you, Grey, for that pocket of information about Evan that I can
now use against him," Scarlett replies, beaming. I swear those two will kill
each other one day.
"My pleasure," Grey replies before shifting his attention to me. "Davis.
Truth or dare?"
Wren looks up at me, her green eyes dancing with mischief. "Dare," I
say, turning back to Grey. He quickly chugs the bottle of water that has
materialised in his hands.
"Pick a vegetable," he demands.
"What?"
"Just pick one," he retorts.
"Uh, celery?"
"Ooh, bad choice, Davis," Grey tuts. He goes into the fridge, rifling
around for said vegetable before he holds up a celery stick. He throws it to
me and I catch it with one hand. "Since your beautiful girlfriend, here,
threw out all your good food, you can brush your teeth with that and see if
she'll kiss you. And if Wren is as-"
"Careful," I warn, "how you finish that sentence, Grey."
He shakes his head laughing. "Just brush your damn teeth, Davis."
I do as he says, feeling disgusting as the green stick rubs against my
teeth. The girls look at me in horror and Wren laughs, finding joy in my
pain.
"You are not kissing me with that mouth, Miles," Wren demands,
holding her finger in my face at a distance. I make a pouty face at her and
she grimaces.
"Baby, you're forgetting that theres a million different ways I can get
you off without my mouth. But trust me, you'll be begging to kiss me by the
time I'm done with you," I whisper for only her to hear. The second I move
my face away from hers, her cheeks inflame.
The game continues around us as Kennedy asks Harry, “Truth or dare?”
“Dare,” Harry replies, leaning forward to look at her better.
“Awh, I was kinda hoping you’d say truth,” Kennedy sulks, a smirk
playing on her lips.
“Why?”
“So, then I could as if you were single or not.” Everyone, except those
two, exchange glances, smiles creeping up our faces. I knew there was
something going on with those two.
“Smooth, Ken,” Wen mutters under her breath when Scarlett looks at
her with wide eyes. I look over to Harry whose mouth has almost dropped
to the floor.
“He’s single,” I say. “Very.”
“This feels like a perfect opportunity to play seven minutes in heaven,”
Xavier suggests, trying to stifle his laugh. “Should we spin a bottle? I’m not
playing, obviously. I’m quite happy with my balls the way they are.”
“We don’t need a bottle,” Kennedy says happily as she stands up. She
waltz’s over to Harry and grabs his hand, as he blinks up at her, pulling him
somewhere that I don’t want to know.
“Do you think that’s a good idea?” Scarlett asks quietly. “I’m in real
protective older sister mode.”
“He’s a good guy. He’s a little much but he’s okay,” I say, reassuring
her.
“You better be right,” Scarlett says, pinning me with a Kubrick stare.
“Or I’ll kill you.”
I raise my hands in surrender as Wren smiles and stands up in front of
me. She turns around to Scarlett, her ass in my face.
“Leave him alone. Kennedy can handle herself. She completely flamed
a guy at Coachella last year without our help.”
“I forgot about that,” Scarlett laughs.
“What’s this Coachella story?” Grey shouts from the kitchen.
“That a story for another time,” she shouts back before she pulls me up
from my seat. “I want to see if what you said is really true.”
Everyone groans as she drags me up the stairs to my bedroom.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 36
WREN
I walk into my mom’s house and it’s eerier that I thought. I half
expected her to welcome me with a dramatic monologue in a candlelit room
but instead it looks creepier than usual. Creepier than the fantasises I made
up on the way here.
I’ve always felt off being here since the divorce. I know it’s never been
my home in a sense but something else hangs in the air.
“Mom?” I call out but nobody responds. I walk through the kitchen, and
I can’t see anybody. I wander through the living room and the den and still,
nobody is there until I get to the dining room which leads out to the
backyard and pool.
I spot the back of my mom’s blonde head first, stood next to one of the
lounge chairs, staring out to the pool. When I get closer, I hear another
voice, a female voice. I slide open the door, walking carefully out onto the
patio.
“Austin?” I ask, my voice suddenly sounding miles away.
Sure enough, my gorgeous brunette older sister turns around. Her heart
shaped face is luminous. She’s always had flawless and striking features,
but this pregnancy has given that a whole new meaning. It’s even more
jarring when I haven’t seen her in person in years. I can hear my heart
thumping against my ribs. Dum, dum. Dum, dum.
She gives me a side glance before turning back away from me. “What
are you doing here?”
“You’re late,” my mom interrupts, not looking up at me either.
“I’m not. I was trying to find you in the house. You could have told me
you were out here.”
“Oh, so this is my fault?” she replies. I almost laugh at her absurdity.
Why does she always make it difficult to deal with her? She has always
been one for the dramatics and to make things seem worse than they are. I
make the brave decision to take a seat next to them, while Austin still stands
away from me.
“What’s going on?” I ask cautiously.
“When were you going to tell me that Austin’s pregnant?” My mom's
piercing blue eyes stare into mine and my breath catches. I’ve been
avoiding it in hopes that Austin would tell her. I don’t know how this has
been flipped on me.
“It slipped my mind. I’m so sorry,” I say wearily. This is starting to feel
like an ambush. My mom gives me a long look without saying anything,
just letting her gaze sink into me before walking back into the house.
What the fuck is going on?
I’m left alone with Austin, and I don’t know what to say. We haven’t
spoken since she told me she was pregnant. The same day that she told me I
had to tell mom. That I had to carry the weight of that secret and accept the
repercussions.
“I asked you to tell her and you couldn’t even do that, Wren. I had to fly
out here and tell her myself. I told you that I didn’t want to do that,” Austin
turns to me, showcasing her small bump. Her voice is steady and more
dejected than angry.
“I’m confused as to how this is my fault. You’re a grown fucking
woman, Austin. You shouldn’t have asked me to tell her in the first place,” I
say back, sounding more bitter than I intended.
“I was going to figure it out. I told you to just do one thing for me. Do
you have any idea how I awful I feel? I could barely stomach the look of
disgust on her face,” Austin retorts, her sad brown eyes flickering over me.
My stomach jolts and I start to feel the nausea kicking in already.
“How do you think I feel after having to keep that a secret on top of
everything else? I worked my ass off for the showcase so I could tell her,
and she didn’t even see the whole thing. She didn’t even say that I did good
but she somehow managed to let me go away for a week. I don’t get it.”
“Wren,” Austin says thickly as she comes to sit down next to me. The
slight anger that was in her face has softened as she takes me in, her
shoulders relaxing. “When are you going to realise that that’s how she is?
She can tell within the first minute of a performance if it’s going to go well
or not. That’s how she’s always been.”
I don’t know when I started crying but I did. Everything is crashing
down on me so quickly that I don’t have the time to process it. Hot stupid
tears rolling down my face. Maybe it was seeing my pregnant sister for the
first time. Maybe it was because I feel trapped in a confusing confrontation.
Or maybe it’s the words that are coming out of my sister’s mouth are the
kind of thoughts I’ve spent so long trying to avoid. The ones that creep up
at me at night and lay next to me, but I’ve trained my brain enough to forget
them.
“If you know that, why are you still doing ballet? Why do you care so
much about what she thinks?” I ask.
“That’s the way I’ve felt my entire life and I can’t get rid of that feeling
— to constantly crave that validation from her. To make it up to her for not
being able to skate like she did. When you’re put on that kind of pedestal
from so young, it’s not easy to just snap out of it. I’m too far in to change
my career path now. This is what she’s made us believe. To only have this
one choice. I thought that you knew that,” Austin explains. She reaches out
her hand to me, rubbing her thumb over my knuckles. I can feel my hand
shaking under her gentle touch.
“I need to go,” I whisper. “I can’t…”
“I know it’s hard to hear, Wren, but you need to be tougher if you want
to survive in this world. She’s not going to be your harshest critic. There
will be people a lot stricter than her. If you want something, if you want to
skate, regardless of your reasons for doing so, you need to learn how to hold
your head up.” Her words sound like daggers straight to the heart, no matter
how gently she attempts to say them.
“I want to be able to do things that make me happy without feeling the
need to please her. I’m sick of doing it for her and not myself,” I admit.
“You’ll find out the reason you’re doing it soon. If you weren’t doing
this for yourself, you wouldn’t be in this deep. There is a part of you that
wants to do this for you. And that’s the part that you need to hold on to.
You’re her last chance at hope. Her last chance at a legacy.”
Her words weigh on my brain as if I’ve been watching too much TV.
I’ve known that. Of course, I have. It’s all she would talk about when we
were kids. Some part of me hoped that if Austin succeeded – which I
thought she would – then I wouldn’t have to try as hard. I could be good
enough for myself and that would be enough.
I made bets with myself. If Austin won her competition, I could come
second in mine. If Austin didn't succeed in school, I could be fine too. If
Austin could balance her relationship with her work, I could too.
“Why do we have to do this, Austin?”
“Because. She’s our mom. She’s hard on us but she’s given us
everything. Even if they’re not what we wanted, it’s what we have.” Austin
looks at me with kind eyes, understanding and sympathy laced within them.
“You should have just become a chef,” I whisper under my breath. She
laughs and the noise almost shocks me hearing her laugh for the first time in
years. Her smile reaches her blushed cheeks as she shakes her head lightly.
“Well, since I’ll be staying at home when the baby comes, who knows
what could happen,” she says, rubbing her stomach as she looks down at it.
"They say anything happens when you're pregnant."
“You seem calmer than you did on the phone,” I murmur.
“I’ve come to peace with it. I’m happy. Excited, even,” she responds.
“Do you know what you’re having yet?”
“A boy,” she says, turning to me with a grin. My heart doubles in size.
“Thank God for that, right?”
“I’m so happy for you, seriously. Dad is going to be over the moon. And
I’m going to have a nephew!”
“Yep,” she says. “We’re thinking of moving back here too. Well, maybe
not Salt Lake but closer.”
“Really?” I don’t bother to hide the excitement in my voice. As much as
she can be hard to deal with, I’ve missed having my sister around. She’s the
only close family I have here other than my parents even if she’s only
visiting.
“Yeah. I’ve missed you, Emmy. I know we weren’t the kindest to each
other growing up, but this baby has really made me rethink it all. I want to
be closer to you.”
“I would really like that.”
After a much needed catch up with my sister, she stays on the patio
when I walk back into the house. For a second, I feel like I’m floating.
Hearing what she said about our mom was hard, but it had to be said. There
had always been some unspoken rule between us that we could never admit
what we were doing our sports for. We pretended to ignore the rants that
mom would go on as to how her life was ruined when she first fell in love
with dad and got pregnant with Austin.
As kids, it wasn’t something we could laugh about. It was a cautionary
tale. Something for us to learn from. It wasn’t anything we could just joke
about because it really was our whole lives. We trained, we preformed and
that was it. There was no reason to sit and look into it. By the time I realised
what was underneath it all, Austin had already gone to college, and it felt
like it was too late. As if bringing it up would start either and argument or a
revolution.
When I get to the kitchen to walk out the front door, I’m stopped by my
mom.
“I’m disappointed in you Wren,” is the only thing I can hear her say. My
eyes adjust to the kitchen counter, and I can just about make out my mom's
figure. She’s sitting with a glass of wine, staring out into the front yard
through a sliver in the blind. Yeah, this is how all my nightmares start.
“Oh, really?” I retort sarcastically. She scoffs before taking a large sip
of her drink. There is nothing I love more than my mom when she’s drunk.
Kidding, of course. She is the worst when she’s drunk.
“Since you’ve been hanging out with that boy something has changed in
you. You would never talk to me like this.”
After the day I’ve had, I don’t bother to hold back on my candour. I
don’t usually like to air out my shit like this, but it needs to happen. There’s
no use for us to hide this anymore. There’s no reason for me to be up her ass
24/7 and let her control every aspect of my life like she has been for the past
nineteen years.
“That’s because I was afraid of you for so long. I was so scared that
you’d stop loving me if I did something wrong. Like you did with dad. But
he didn’t even have to do anything. You just stopped. No explanation. That
was it and you never told us why. I have spent my whole life trying so hard
for that not to happen. I thought that if I did my best, if I made you happy in
some way, you wouldn't stop loving me.”
I take a deep breath. I don’t know when I got so close to her; when I
could start to smell the wine on her tongue, but I did. She looks at me for a
moment, as if contemplating which direction to take. She avoids my eyes
when she speaks next.
“You’re starting to sound bratty and selfish, Amelia. You seem to be
forgetting who paid for all your skating outfits and who pays for half of
your rent. Yet you and that boy were so quick to take that vacation, knowing
you were lying to me.”
“Does that even matter anymore? Austin is happy. Can’t that be
enough?” I huff. “Listen, we’re grateful for the trip but we didn’t ask you to
do that. You’re the one who got us that hotel so you could try to make me
forget about how much you hated my performance. Like you do every time.
The same thing with the flowers. In some pathetic way for you to apologise
and make yourself feel better.”
“It was abysmal, Amelia. I was not going to lie to you. You needed that
sort of feedback for improvement. You need a backbone. If I was hard on
you all the time, then you would stop skating. I need to find a balance
somewhere,” she slurs.
I’ve never seen her get this bad before and it’s starting to make me feel
sick. My heart beats loudly in my ear as I try and keep my cool.
“I can’t listen to this anymore.”
I turn out of the door as the sun starts to set. The days are short here and
the nights are long and dark during the winter. Regardless, I kick my jog up
into a sprint as I try to get out of her neighbourhood. I don’t know where
exactly I’m going.
I could have got back in my car, but I don’t think I’m able to sit still
with all this adrenaline rushing through me. I must have been running for
almost an hour by the time I can see my apartment from where I’m stood
panting. Instead, I turn left down towards the houses near campus.
I run up into the cul de sac and I see his house. I run up the steps and
knock the door.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 37
MILES
“Wren?” I pull her inside from the February chill and wrap my arms
around her cold body. She stands lifelessly in my arms as she cries,
breathing heavily. “Wren, what’s wrong? What happened? Are you hurt?”
She looks up at me, but she doesn’t say anything. My heartbeat triples
in pace when I take in her sullen expression. Her face is completely red, and
her eyes look tired and dark from crying. I keep my arms around her as I
bring her further into the house. I take off her coat for her and she slips it on
the hanger, not fully looking at me.
I walk with my arm around her as I take her up into my room, without
saying anything. She sits down at the edge of my bed, looking up at me, her
mouth twitching into a frown.
“I think I’m going to throw up,” she groans before rushing off into my
en suite. I run in after her but she’s already retching over the toilet. I kneel
down next to her and pull back her hair as she finishes throwing up. She
coughs and sighs over the toilet.
“I’m sorry. I’m sorry. That was so disgusting,” she whispers as she sits
down on the floor next to the toilet seat, pulling her knees to her chest. She
tries to make a joke but her laugh sounds forced. “How the tables have
turned, huh?”
I laugh quietly as I scoop her into my lap while I lean against the
bathtub. When I move my hand over her forehead, brushing her hair out of
her face, she’s quiet as she melts her body into mine.
The slower my hand moves, the softer she starts to cry again with her
shoulders shaking. I sit there with her, not sure what to say to make this
better. I’ve always been awkward in these sorts of situations. The pain in
her voice makes my chest tighten and I wish there was a way that I could
take away all of her hurt. Her cries settle down after a while and her
breathing steadies.
“Can I take a shower? I need to brush my teeth too,” Wren says between
sniffles as she moves from out of my lap to sit next to me. “Can you get my
clothes?”
“Of course,” I whisper, and I kiss her on the head.
I go into my room and look into my drawer that now has some of her
clothes mixed in with mine. You wouldn’t guess how many thongs have
ended up in my laundry in the last few weeks. I pull out a shirt and some
shorts and go back into the bathroom.
She’s still on the floor so I reach out my hand and pull her up. Her face
is still soaked with tears, but she seems better than she did when she came
through the door.
“Are you going to be okay? Do you want me to help you?” I ask, trying
to find some way to be of use to her as I shift from one foot to the other.
“Miles,” she says softly, shaking her head. “I think I can take a shower
on my own. Thank you for offering, though. I will definitely take it up
another time.” She tries to laugh again but it doesn’t sound like her own.
I pace my room while she takes one of her long showers. At the rink
this morning, I had a feeling that seeing her mom would put her down. She
never talks about her like she is her mom. She talks as if she’s more like her
coach – an inconvenience. After meeting her dad, I couldn’t imagine how
he was married to Ms Hacks for so long when they seem so different. Mr
Hackerly is a kind and a very fun person. Someone who just let her be a kid.
It makes me think that I’m too hard on my mom who has always
supported me and never pushed me to do something I don’t want to do.
She’s let me live. No matter how hard I make it for her.
I stop my overthinking and sit down on the bed when the warm air from
the bathroom hits me. She comes out of the en suite in shorts and a t-shirt,
her hair damp and dripping on her shoulders. I still haven’t got used to her
in my room like this. Like she belongs here. She sits down on the bed next
to me, crossing her legs.
“Do you want to talk about what happened?” I ask, bringing my hand to
her back. She doesn’t say anything for a while, but she looks fresher.
“Austin came back,” she responds quietly, staring at the dresser in front
of her. “My mom knows that she’s pregnant and even though Austin is
happy about it, my mom has found a way to put all the pressure onto me. If
Austin doesn’t go back to ballet after the baby comes, all of her focus will
be on me.”
“Jesus, Wren. I’m so sorry.” My heart aches for her. If I could take all of
her pain, I would do it in an instant. I know how hard she works and
sometimes it can’t be enough for her. Or her mom.
“You don’t need to be sorry. It’s just my messed-up family,” she replies.
“Even now when she’s five months pregnant she’s still trying to please her.
How fucked up is that?”
“That is really messed up but that doesn’t mean that you have to. You
need to do things for yourself, not for her.”
“I know,” she says under her breath. “I just don’t think it’s that easy. I
found skating fun when I was a kid, when I was doing it with my friends
without the pressure of trying to win a competition. But after doing it
competitively, I don’t think I could skate anymore without thinking about
how to do better. It’s, like, wired in me.
"I know it's stupid but I keep constantly trying to do my best, hoping
that if I am the very best at everything, then she won't have a reason to stop
loving me."
"Wren, you need to be happy. You are not responsible for making
somebody else happy. You need to try to find some way to make your goals
actually your goals,” I suggest. She turns to me, a small smile on her lips.
“This is me trying, Miles.”
She looks at me for a long while as if her eyes are telling me to trust her.
Telling me believe that she’s able to pick herself back up. As if she needs to
let me know that this isn’t her first time having this conversation with
somebody. I just hope she means it.
"I'm proud of you."
She blinks at me. "You don't need to say that, Miles."
"I do," I say, "you don't need me to say it but I want to, okay? I haven't
known you long but I don't need to to say that you are the most brilliant
person I have ever met. And I-" The words get stuck in my throat and I
swallow them. "I think you're spectacular. And I hate that you think that
your mom is going to stop loving you for not doing your best. Because you,
just existing is enough."
She wraps her arms around me and it feels like it's the first time she's
really hugged me. She holds on tight to my shoulders and I squeeze her
lower back, pulling her into me as I whisper, I'm here.
"You have no idea how much that means to me," she muffles into my
neck. I do, I want to say, I do. She holds onto me tight before pulling back,
trying her best at a real smile.
“Enough of this sad shit. Do you want to order food? I’m hungry,” she
rambles as she flops back onto my bed, clutching her stomach. I don’t push
her on the sudden change of subject. I pull my phone out of my pocket and
open up UberEATS.
“Are you sure? You just threw up,” I ask. She nods, pulling her hair out
of her face. I try and ignore the streaks of red I can see in her eyes. “What
do you want to get?”
“Uh…I don’t know,” she says, biting her lip.
“You just said you were hungry.”
“I am,” she says defensively. This always happens with her. She
complains about how hungry she is but can never make a decision about
food.
“Okay, then. Burgers?
“Too many calories.”
“What happened to wanting do things for yourself?” I groan as I lean
over her. I kiss around her face and her neck rapidly. She tries to escape but
I kiss her faster and she laughs, moving up and down the bed.
“I am,” she squeals again as I start to kiss her collarbone. “I want to do
things for myself but, that doesn’t mean I want to mess up my diet right
now. I work hard for the body you’re so clearly obsessed with.”
“That’s true but I don’t want you to feel like you have to stick to it for
me,” I say, pulling away from the kiss. Her soft hand moves to my cheek,
her thumb stroking beneath my eye the way that I like.
“I don’t stick to it for you. I do that for myself.”
“Okay, good,” I reply as I kiss her again.
*
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 38
MILES
We spend the next few days in one of those heavenly hazes where
we’re doing nothing and everything, just lost in each other’s presence. I
don’t know we quickly became this. Us. How we so easily fit together like
this. We spend the days with our friends, talking shit about whatever’s on
the rotation for the week. We take millions of photos to post online which
are instantly met with comments like, You’re my OTP, How do these pics
keep getting cuter, and I’m so jealous. And I fucking love it.
“Do you think you’ll get an award?” Wren asks, coming up behind me
in the mirror while I brush my teeth. She’s wearing my shirt and nothing
else as she bends over me to pick up her toothbrush. I watch her in the
mirror, and it takes all I am to grip onto my toothbrush instead of her.
“Considering how I’ve been on the bench, and I’ve only just got back
on the team, I’m not expecting to,” I say through a foamy smile before
spitting and rinsing in the sink. I move behind her as she nods and places
her toothbrush in her mouth. I wrap my hands around her stomach and rest
my chin on her shoulder, watching the way her smile creeps up her cheeks
while she tries to smother it with her toothbrush. “Do you think you will?”
“Maybe. I don’t know-” she mumbles. She takes the toothbrush out of
her mouth and pauses, looking at me. “It’s not like Darcy has many
options.”
“You’re the best skater on the team, Wren,” I say. She pauses the
toothbrush at her mouth before shaking her head and finishes brushing her
teeth. I move to the side of the sink, leaning against it while she rinses.
We have spent a lot of mornings like this. It makes this whole thing feel
even more surreal. I knew that being in a real relationship with her would
be fun and exciting, but I didn’t expect to feel this overwhelming sense of
calm and tranquillity when she’s around. She moves to stand between my
legs, her hands roaming up and down my shoulder as she studies me with a
strange expression.
“You’re biased because we’re sleeping together,” she pouts as if she’s
just remembered what we were talking about. I bring my hands around the
back of her bare thighs, pressing her closer to me.
“Oh, we’re just sleeping together? I thought I was your boyfriend,” I
whine sarcastically as she pushes me in the shoulder. I grip onto her waist
as she leans into me, and I inhale her scent.
“Since when?” she asks, kissing along my jaw until she gets to my ear
as she whispers, “It’s interesting how you’re always begging to hang out
with me, begging me to stay over here, begging to fuck me, but you’ve not
had the decency to even ask me to be your girlfriend. If anything, I’m still
faking it to qualify.”
“Is that what you want? You want me to beg you to be my girlfriend?”
She pulls away from me and drags her lip between her teeth and nods at me
in that sultry way I have spent every night since I’ve met her thinking
about.
In one swift motion, I turn her around until her ass is against the sink.
Her green eyes search mine as her eyebrows furrow when I don’t say
anything. I lift up my shirt on her and run my hands from the back of her
knee up to her ass and she gasps when I grab it. Her eyes don’t leave mine
as I slowly lower to my knees, bunching the shirt in my hands. I leave long
kisses on the insides of her thighs as she grabs my hair in her hands,
twisting her fingers between each of my curls.
“I want you to be mine, Wren,” I whisper into her skin as I inch further
up her thighs until I’m almost at where she’s waiting for me. “I want you to
scream my name when I make you come. I want you in my bed every night.
I want you and anything you’re willing to give me. I will do anything to get
you to be my girlfriend.”
The only response I get is a small whimper when my mouth meets her
pussy in gentle kiss. I don’t do what she’s expecting me to do and instead I
kiss further up until I’m at her stomach before kissing back down her right
thigh. Both of her hands come to each side of my face when I sit back on
my heels. A huge grin splits across her mouth as she shakes her head
disbelievingly.
“That wasn’t so hard. Was it, baby?"
*
“Did you really have to carry me the whole way here? I could have
walked from the car,” she moans when I throw her onto my bed. She
scrambles back so she’s in the middle of the bed and I climb up to her as
she sits crossed legged, the dress only just covering her exposed thighs.
“What would be the fun in that?” I catch her lips with a rough kiss
before she starts to fall back onto the bed. I’ve been dying to touch her like
this all night. I run my hands along her thighs, coming dangerously close to
her bare heat. “Jesus. Are you always this wet when I’m around?”
“I’m starting to think it’s a problem,” she rasps, leaning up on her
elbows to guide my hand up further up her until my hand reaches where
she’s soaking. “Especially when you got jealous earlier. That was hot.”
I brush my thumb over her clit, and she moans into my ear, arching off
the bed. “I don’t like the thought of you with anyone else, Wren. Do you
understand?”
She nods, her heavy breathing clouding my senses.
“Call me crazy but I think I’m, like, definitely obsessed with you. You
drive me insane just by looking at you. That is a problem,” I groan into her,
still keeping my hand over her wet pussy as her legs shift beneath me.
“I kind of like it. Is that bad?” she breathes biting her lip. I shake my
head slowly, moving my fingers over her. She starts to sit up off the bed, her
hands coming to my face where she kisses me softly. "But, Miles, promise
me you won't do that again. Don't push me aside. Because I mean
something, okay? And I don't like feeling like I don't."
My heart sinks a little. "I'm sorry. I got caught up and I didn't mean to
do hurt you. I don't want to hurt you because you mean everything."
"Good. Then, treat me like it," she demands, kissing me deeply. I make
the promise to her over and over in my actions and in my brain because
there is nothing I wouldn't do for this girl.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 39
WREN
I wake up and my face feels sticky and wet. It’s almost as if I’ve
woken up from a bad dream where I was crying because even after I’ve
wiped my face, it feels wet again. I wipe my face again, too tired to open
my eyes and it becomes covered in wetness. But then I realise it’s because
I’m in a relationship with a damn puppy.
Miles leans over me, shirtless, pressing kisses all over my face and
chest and I can tell it’s barely even light outside. It’s still winter so it gets
bright later in the day but the fact that I can hear the faint chirp of birds is
not a good sign.
“What do you want from me?” I groan, trying to push him off me but he
continues to kiss my face.
“I want you to get up,” he demands between kisses.
“What time is it?”
“Six,” he says, smiling.
“And you think that’s an acceptable time to wake me up, why?”
“Because I’ve got a surprise for you,” he sing-songs, pulling me up into
a sitting position. He pushes the hair that’s stuck to my forehead out of my
face and kisses me deeply. I don’t think I’m ever going to get used to this
feeling. The overwhelming sense of calm that I get whenever he’s around.
“Oh that makes this so much better,” I say sarcastically when I pull
apart from him.
“It’s going to be worth it.”
It better be.
I drag myself up out of his bed, still wearing his shirt and his boxers. He
watches me as I get up and I realise that he’s already half dressed. His
hoodie hangs on the back of his chair at his desk and his jeans are
unbuttoned. What am I missing?
“Why are you already dressed? How long have I been sleeping for?” I
quiz and then I gasp dramatically. “How long have you been watching me
sleep for?”
“Stop asking questions and get ready, woman,” he challenges, throwing
a pillow at me.
He follows me into the bathroom, watching as I brush my teeth. My hair
is in desperate need for a cut and since I’ve been borrowing the hair
products that he uses and it’s making my hair more wavy than usual. Miles
leans against the sink, crossing his arms as he watches me apply moisturiser
to my face, rubbing it in slow circles.
“In case it isn't obvious, you need to hurry up,” he presses. I glare at
him and his smile widens. “Please?”
“Why? Where are we going?” I ask through a mouthful of toothpaste.
He laughs at me and shakes his head. I spit out the toothpaste and rinse my
mouth, turning to him. “You can’t rush beauty.”
“You’re beautiful every day without even trying, baby,” he says
seriously, wrapping his arm around my waist to pull me into him. He kisses
me on the forehead. “Now hurry up. Kennedy and Scarlett are already on
their way there.”
That gets me excited. Whatever Miles is up to involves my girls so I
already know that it’s going to be a good day. Even if I’ve had to wake up at
the buttcrack of dawn to see whatever it is he’s surprising me with. I finish
getting ready, putting on my favourite blue jeans and white sweatshirt, not
exactly sure what I’m dressing for.
Miles doesn’t really do surprises. I don’t either. So I know that this must
be special. When I meet his impatient ass downstairs, he’s already waiting
by the door, my tote bag on his shoulder, ushering me towards him. I pick
up my pace and meet him at the door, no idea what I’m walking into.
*
“No way,” I say for the fourth time.
“Yes way,” Miles says.
“No. Freaking. Way,” I say again, punctuating each sentence with a
push in his arm.
“Yes way,” Kennedy and Scarlett scream in unison. Miles grins at me,
rubbing his arm as if I really hurt him.
“I think I’m going to pass out,” I say, needing to find something to hold
onto. I step back from the curb, careful not to turn myself into roadkill and I
inch closer towards the bookstore. It feels like I’m dreaming. I must be
because there is no way that I’m standing outside the indie bookstore that
I’ve been dying to go to since I heard it opened. There is also no way that
Scarlett got us all tickets to a book signing with Jasmine James.
“Do you think it was worth waking up early for?” Miles asks.
“Yes! If you had told me that this is where we're going I would’ve got
up way earlier,” I say truthfully.
Jasmine’s first book came out at the same time that I had finally started
to get deeper invested in writing. It was a perfect fluffy romcom that she
wrote about her and her now husband. It gave me the inspiration to finally
pursue my writing more seriously and it gave me the opportunity to find
writing communities online and other books like Jasmine’s. Since then, I’ve
been following every release she’s had and all of the books that are coming
up. I even convinced Scar and Ken into reading her books and they have
also become obsessed. I didn’t think she’d come here for her book tour for
her latest release, ‘The Stars and You.’
“What do you think she’s going to reveal this week?” Scarlett asks,
looking down the queue. It turns out we weren’t the only ones with the idea
of coming here early because there are people in front of us, even some
people in tents, probably been here for hours. The store opens in less than
an hour and we’ve been here for almost three.
“Why would she reveal something?” Miles asks, clearly oblivious to the
kind of author Jasmine is.
“You know how Taylor Swift releases easter eggs before releasing a
song or an album?” I say and he nods. I’ve been teaching him well.
“Jasmine does a similar thing. She has a segment at the end of the book
signings where she answers questions and usually, she’ll say something that
will link to her next release. Sometimes it’s just a few words and others it’s
a whole sentence full of easter eggs.”
“And you guys find that entertaining…how?” he asks.
“You just don’t get it,” Kennedy says, waving him off. “This is our
Joker.”
“Right…” Miles says, looking between us. He pulls me into him,
wrapping his arm around my shoulder. “Why are you so warm? It’s
freezing.”
“It must be all those extra curriculars you put me through before we
came,” I say, teasing him as he pulls down my beanie further. He smiles at
me. One of those real, Miles-type smiles with dimples and crinkled eyes.
“Oh, so that’s why you took so long,” Scarlett says, nodding. “Makes
more sense.”
I don’t even bother to make a snide comment at that because all I really
want is to be sharing my warmth with Miles in this weather. As scary as it
was to commit to this relationship, I’ve started to realise that he has become
one of my best friends. He listens to me and does the most insane things just
to see me smile. And I would do a thousand insane things to get him to
smile too. He’s become my favourite person to talk to and the first and last
thing I think of each day. As scary as it feels to throw myself into this, I’m
glad that we’ve established a friendship before so it feels less daunting.
I know exactly how Miles felt meeting his idols at the Sports
Achievement Evening because that is exactly how I feel walking into the
bookstore, knowing that my favourite author is in there. Excited, nervous
and a little bit sick. If I had known we were coming here, I would have
prepared some questions beforehand. What do you say to someone who
basically saved your life without knowing?
The bookshop is small with a deep rustic vibe to it, blue bunting
hanging from the ceiling and a huge lifesize cut out of the cover of
Jasmine’s new book and a stack of signed editions. It’s a weird feeling
meeting an author. Often, you forget that they’re a real person, putting every
single emotion you’ve ever had into words. And you also forget that they
have a real face with real feelings and a very real personality.
We’re all anxiously waiting for our turn, Kennedy and Scarlett switch
places in the line to have a better look at Jasmine at the front of the queue.
Even Miles looks nervous, his arm hung around my shoulder as if it belongs
there, tugging me tighter into him as if we aren’t close enough already.
“Do you know what you’re going to ask her?” Miles asks me.
“I have no clue,” I admit. I turn to look up at him, brushing his dark
curly hair out of his face. “What do you think I should ask?”
“Well, it’s not like she’s a genie or something. Or is she?” he asks,
raising an eyebrow. I shake my head, laughing. “Then just something you
feel like you could use advice on. Since she’s older and wiser and all.”
“That’s true,” I say, biting my bottom lip as I nod. We start to move
down the queue and I start to feel the nerves in my stomach. She’s just a
regular person like you. Don’t need to freak out, Wren, I tell myself. “You
guys go first.”
Kennedy and Scarlett turn to me, clutching their copies of ‘The Stars
and You’ to their chest. “Are you sure? You’re the one that introduced us to
her.”
“Yeah, I’m sure. I need to mentally prepare myself,” I say, taking a deep
breath and switching places with them so me and Miles are behind them.
“I’m fine. I’m not going to freak out.”
Miles laughs, rubbing my shoulder. “You keep telling yourself that,
baby.”
When Scarlett and Kennedy move to the side after their turn, they give
me a huge thumbs up, trying to prepare me for one of the best moments of
my life. I thought that nothing could top the week that I had with Miles in
Palm Springs but this moment is coming in close second. Miles tells me that
he’s going to stand over at the side with the girls, giving me a moment alone
with Jasmine.
I get to her desk and oh my God, she is gorgeous. Of course I’ve seen
pictures of her online but she’s not one of those very public authors. As
much as she likes to share snippets of her personal life with her husband,
it’s more pictures of him than it is of her. She has fantastic long ginger hair
and unlike her Instagram pictures, she’s sporting owl framed glasses,
similar to the ones I use when I read. My hands are practically shaking as I
place the book down on the table as she smiles up at me.
“Hi. How are you?” she asks, resting her forearms on the book and her
whole attention is on me.
“I-I’m great. My boyfriend and my friends surprised me with this so I’m
doing great. How are you? How are you finding Utah?” I ask. Great. Word
vomit. Exactly what I need right now. I clear my throat.
She laughs quietly, opening up the book to the first page. “It’s a lot
colder than I thought it would be. Honestly, I don’t know what compelled
me to pack for a summer trip,” she says, shaking her head.
“It can be very deceiving,” I say back.
“Who am I signing this for?” she asks, picking up her black marker.
“For Wren,” I say, hating how childish I sound. She nods.
“I told myself that I wouldn’t ask everyone this but do you have any
burning questions? It can be about the book or about life in general. Are
you a writer?” she asks, excitedly and I’m taken aback about how chilled
out this all feels. All that freaking out I did is borderline embarrassing.
“Sort of,” I say with a shrug. She nods understandingly. “I do want to
ask something, though. You can totally ignore this if it’s stupid but I just
want to know if you know how to do something even if it’s scary. To put
yourself into something that could possibly turn out to be a shitshow.” I
gasp at myself. “Sorry. I probably shouldn’t swear in front of the baby.”
She laughs at that, rubbing her stomach. “Trust me, you should hear the
amount of curse words Ida’s dad uses. It’s not going to be any different with
this one,” she says, pointing at her small bump. “Anyway. What are you
worried about turning into a shitshow?”
I sigh. “Everything,” I explain. “Mostly a new relationship.”
Jasmine smiles faintly, she gestures for me to come closer to the table
and I do as if she’s about to tell me a secret. “Sweetheart, I met you…what?
Two minutes ago? And I can already tell that that boy over there is head-
over-heels, Blake Lively and Ryan Reynolds kind of in love with you.”
I don’t mention the fact that we have never said those words to each
other. That this is all still new. We’re practically still in the honeymoon
stage. Instead, I ask, “How do you know that?”
“Because his eyes have not left you since you’ve been in here,” she says
flippantly. I turn to him then, catching him standing next to the girls who
are gushing to him over their signed copies. Like Jasmine said, his eyes are
on me. He’s probably listening to their conversation half-heartedly but his
eyes don’t leave mine. Even when I raise my eyebrows at him, silently
asking what he’s doing, all he does is grin, knowing that he’s got me
wrapped right around his little finger. “When I was setting up, I saw you
two outside and I just knew. I knew because I’ve been you. I was scared to
dive into a relationship with someone I have clearly been in love with my
whole life. And it turned out to be the best thing to ever happen to me. I
mean, he’s put two babies in me for God’s sake.” She laughs again and I
join in. “You are never going to know how it could work out if you don’t
try.”
I stand there, pretty much motionless as I watch her write in my signed
copy. I barely register that our conversation has ended by the time I get to
the girls and Miles, all of them excited to see what she wrote in there but I
don’t open it. I tell them that I’ll look in it later, not wanting to ruin the
sparkle of this morning just yet.
Still, after we’ve all had lunch together and we’ve gone back to the
apartment, I don’t open it. Even after FaceTiming my dad and telling him
about the surprise, I can’t bring myself to open it. Only because I know that
whatever she’s written in there is going to be the only thing going through
my mind for the next two years. Finally, after I’ve showered and I’m ready,
I pick up the book.
To, Wren.
Firstly, you don’t need a man to determine your
worth. Gross. You can do that on your own. But
when you do have one that looks at you like that
and does things for you like he did today, you
hold him close and you keep him. Because even on
your worst days, he’s going to be there for you if
you let him in.
Take care, Jasmine.
I try to take in what she said. How much do you think it would cost if I
asked this woman to be my therapist? I read it over and over and each time I
get chills.
Hold him close and keep him.
I can do that.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 40
MILES
I’ve been trying to put it into words how it feels when I watch Wren
perform. At the showcase it was incredible and liberating but watching her
compete? A whole other level. The way she gets pissed when she thinks
she’s going to be late. The way she takes her hair down after performing a
flawless routine. The way she gets annoyed at me when I forget to bring the
right water. The way she insults me when I slip up.
It’s an addiction.
“Do you ever listen to anything I tell you?” she spits, her foot in my lap
as I untie the laces on her skates. We’re sitting in the locker room after one
of her competitions in LA which I’m sure she’s won. I accidentally forgot to
pack her phone charger after she told me to get it since she left it in my
room. So, she’s in a bad mood. Understandable. “Why are you smiling?”
“Because I like it when you shout at me. Is that bad?” I say through a
grin, tapping her leg so she changes her foot. She rests her other foot in my
lap, allowing me to undo her other lace.
“Yeah, you’ve got a problem. Get help immediately,” she says, trying
her hardest not to smile at me. “What are you doing later?”
“You, hopefully,” I whisper and she actually laughs at that but she still
waits for an answer.
“Miles.”
“Wren.”
She sticks her tongue in her cheek, again, trying not to laugh as her face
turns pink. “I’ve just competed against one of the most hardcore teams in
America. The last thing I’m thinking about is you putting that inside me.
My body needs to heal.”
“And heal it will,” I say, pulling her into my lap so she can straddle me.
“After I’m done with you.” I kiss across her jaw, down to her neck, across
the small exposed skin on her neck and she whimpers.
"We’ve got one more night in LA. What do you want to do?” she asks
between pants.
“I already told you what I want to do,” I press again, my dick twitching
at the thought. She looks at me seriously. “We can stay in tonight. Your
body is sore and I’m exhausted from watching you all day. My eyes can
only open for so long.”
She laughs and the sound runs through me like honey. “You’re so
dramatic.”
“Only for you.”
We do exactly that. We spent our last night here in the hotel room across
from Coach Darcy and the other team members, pampering ourselves with
facemasks as we watched Brooklyn Nine-Nine reruns. We splash out on
room service, filling ourselves with pancakes and waffles until we’re so
stuffed, we can’t even sleep close to each other, needing the space to spread
out.
As much as this girl can pretend that she doesn’t want me, when we get
back to Salt Lake that day, she only orders the Uber to my house instead of
hers, meaning she wants to spend the night. I don’t mind at all. Being with
her sometimes feels like it’s the only thing keeping me alive. I know how
dramatic that sounds but it's true. Every time I’m around her, I just want
more and more and more.
*
“What’s your favourite song?” she asks me out of nowhere. We’re
laying on my bed after one of my games, both tired as hell. Well, I’m laying
down and Wren’s on top of me, running her hands through my hair.
“Right now?” I ask, trying to think. She nods. “Anything by Taylor
Swift…?”
“Good try, Milesy,” she says, laughing. “I want to know what your
favourite song is.”
“Why? So we can do karaoke like we did in Palm Springs?” I ask
hopefully, leaning up on my elbows.
“God, no. I’m never doing that again,” she groans even though I know
she loved it and everything we did afterwards. She looks at me calmly,
twisting her fingers through my hair as she whispers, “I might be making a
playlist for you.”
I gasp dramatically. “Really? For me?” I ask, feigning shock and she
rolls her eyes. “Or is it for me but not really for me?”
“Well, you know all about that, don't you?” she challenges.
“You saw it eventually!”
“Yeah, on accident,” she retorts. I narrow my eyes at her.
“Where is this conversation going?” I whisper, trying to catch whatever
is in her eyes. There’s something hidden behind them and I want to know
more. There’s one last wall that I need to break down. I try and see if I can
bring it down and I say, “You know you’re my favourite person, right?”
That almost cracks it. Her eyes crinkle as if she’s about to cry and I
think I’ve said the wrong thing. What I’m not expecting is for her to hug
me. I can count on one hand the amount of times Wren and I have hugged
and it’s always because the other really needs it. When we were fake dating,
it was sort of an unspoken rule that hugging was crossing the line.
“You are so obsessed with me. It’s kind of pathetic,” she muffles into
my skin and I laugh. You have no idea how right you are, I want to say. She
draws back from me. “I hate to ruin this moment, but my phone needs to
charge.” I don’t get to respond before she’s slipped off my bed to plug her
phone into my socket.
When she comes back onto the bed, I sit against the headboard, patting
my lap and she sits on me, her pink summer dress pooling at both sides of
me. I sink my teeth into her collarbone, my hands digging into her sides as
her body presses against me.
“Where were we?” I ask as I bring my hand underneath her dress,
slipping further up her thighs until I get around to her ass.
“You were saying how you’re so obsessed with me.”
“Right. Of course,” I muse, slapping her ass. “I can’t get enough of
this.” I drag my mouth from her collarbone, across her chest to her right
side. “Or this.” I plant kisses across her neck, and she shivers, a light
whimper escaping her mouth when I press a light kiss in the sensitive part
beneath her ear. I move my hand from her ass to the other side to touch her
wetness. “And this.” I rub my thumb over her clit slowly. “Do you like it
when I touch you here, baby?”
“Mm hmm,” she murmurs, rolling over me. I can feel her wetness on
my trousers, and it makes my dick twitch. Her phone chimes with a
notification but we drown it out with sloppy kisses and stupid whispers. She
wraps her hands around the back of my neck, studying my face before
leaving a long kiss on my lips as she rolls over me faster. Her phone chimes
again.
“You should get it,” I pant as I look down to my bedside table and her
phone lights up with tons of messages. “Wren, you have, like, a million
miscalls.”
“Just leave it,” she breathes, still rolling over my fingers as she kisses
along my jaw. I can’t help but look down to her phone again which hasn’t
turned off yet.
She finally reaches over, pulling her phone off the wire and balancing it
on her shoulder, still moving over my fingers. “Ken, what is it? I’m kind
of…” I press a kiss to her shoulders, gaining a shaky exhale as Kennedy’s
voice sounds muffled on the phone. They sound like they’re taking in code,
so I continue moving my fingers around her as she pins me with a blissfully
pained look on her face, still mumbling into the phone. God, this might be
the hottest thing I’ve ever seen. “I’ll…” she pants into the phone when I
brush my thumb over her and she clamps her mouth shut to stifle her moan.
“I’ll look now. Okay, bye.”
“What was all that about?” I ask when she uses both of her hands to
type into her phone, not looking up at me. She shrugs before throwing down
her phone next to me. She dives into my neck, her hand curling around the
nape of my neck as she starts to bite and suck me. "Fuck.” I groan when she
bites just underneath my jaw but my voice sounds hoarse. “Wren. Stop.
That. Shit. You’re going to give me a hickey.”
She laughs against my throat. “Good.”
“You’re insane.” I still haven’t got used to this. This utterly bizarre
feeling that shoots through my body when her mouth is on me. Her phone
lights up again beside me. She groans as she reaches for it, finally looking
at whatever people are spamming her about.
“Fuck me,” she breathes, staring down at the phone.
“Okay,” I say cheerfully, pulling her even closer to me but she doesn’t
budge. When her eyes meet mine and I can tell something’s wrong. She
doesn’t look at me like she’s about to kiss me again. She doesn’t look like
she’s going to make a witty joke before unbuttoning my jeans. Instead, she
looks at me with pain and hurt in her eyes.
“No, literally, Miles. This is so fucked up,” she whispers, looking down
at her phone then back up at me.
“What happened? Talk to me.”
“Do you remember what you were doing in Palm Springs, the day of
our flight home?” I shake my head and shrug. I remember getting wasted in
the middle of the day and some old lady had to drag my drunk ass to the
hotel. “Yeah, I thought not.”
“Wren, what’s going on?”
She turns her phone to me, turning up the volume but I can already read
the subtitles. It takes me a minute to register the video that’s playing out
loud. Of me. That day in the bar. I start to feel sick. I look up at her and
she’s not looking at me.
“Shit. Wren, I’m so sorry. I didn’t know what I was doing. I was out of
my mind.”
“I’ve… I’m…. I’ve got to go.”
What the fuck have I done?
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 41
WREN
I thought I could see the future. I thought I could see all the bad things
happen. I did for a while – I saw the bad things coming but I luxuriated in
them regardless because how good it felt. I did it because it was something
new, different and an incredibly exhilarating feeling to be with him.
But then it stopped working.
Even when I helped him get better in Palm Springs my worst-case
scenario was that he would get caught underage drinking not that he would
overshare to Mason Greer. I don’t care that I was half naked in some of the
pictures. I don’t care that he slurred about us having sex. I only care that he
said that I am incapable of loving him or anyone. Just because I don’t
believe in something, and I don’t want to purposely experience it doesn’t
make me unable to do it.
That is what upsets me the most when I get into bed that night. When all
the lights are off, and the only light is coming from my phone where the
video plays on loop as I scroll through the comments. It’s then that it all
comes crashing down on me.
He is the one who told me that I wasn’t insane or crazy for being afraid
of love. He made me feel like it was okay and that he could accept that even
in our fake relationship. He comforted me and told me I didn’t need to be
scared and that it was a practical thing.
For as long as I could remember, I’ve felt that way about love. Since my
parents’ sudden divorce, love didn’t feel like this sacred and out of reach
thing to aspire for. It felt like a burden that I didn’t want to bear. It felt like a
watered-down emotion that people have been holding on to for centuries to
make their relationships seem more serious.
I had a feeling in the back of my mind — the sort of feeling I tried to
suppress over that week — that he wouldn’t be able to accept it. I was more
shocked than anything when he acted like it was fine. Augustus made sure
that I knew it was a weird thing to feel. That it wasn’t natural.
A large part of me hoped that Miles wasn’t like that – that he would still
care for me in the same way. It was his subconscious talking that day at the
bar. It was what he really felt but didn’t want to tell me. There is no denying
the attraction between us. The constant pull towards each other. But that had
always existed within our fake dating plan even when we tried to ignore it.
It needed to be acted on and we were both willing to dip our toes in for a
second. What I didn’t expect to find lingering in there was love which is the
last thing either of us need.
He’s the kind of distraction my friends encourage but the kind of
distraction I can’t afford to pursue.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 42
MILES
Have you ever been so completely drunk that you end up talking to the
gossipiest person in the world? Because I have. It’s just my luck that the
morning after I have the best sex of my life that I would run into Mason
Greer in Palm Springs while I was out of my mind. After moping about
how I thought Wren had hated me, I royally fucked up the last bit of trust
that Wren and I had built. I had only just asked her to be my girlfriend – for
real – and she’s already gone.
When I sobered up later that day, all I remembered was talking to Emily
and this guy came up to me. I only remembered his face blurring around the
edges. I do remember thinking he was Carter. He had the same soulful eyes
as him and deep tanned skin. He looked harmless. Maybe it was all the
alcohol I had but I could have sworn he sounded so much like him too.
That’s why it was so easy to talk to him. It felt like being at the rockery
again but with someone to speak back to me. I didn’t notice the phone in his
hand though.
WHINY GUY COMPLAINS OVER GF WHO DOESN’T LOVE
HIM ON NEW YEARS DAY, the caption read on every reposting
account. Somehow, someone managed to identify me and spread it around
NU. It’s one of the first scandals I’ve ever been involved in, and it doesn’t
feel good. It was torture when Wren left a few days ago and I went
downstairs to Evan and Xavier laughing at me. It got worse when I had to
go into class with everyone snickering as if I wasn’t there.
If it feels bad for me, it must me a million times worse for Wren. It had
to come out at the worst possible time for her and for us. She has all the
drama with her family on her back as well as competition season. It’s the
last thing she needs to deal with right now.
Hearing the video play on repeat and watching myself in a moment that
I don’t remember is weird. It’s like I’m floating outside of my body, out of
control of all the stupid things I said.
“Dude, this situation sucks but you’ve got to admit that’s it’s a little
funny,” Evan mentions for the hundredth time in the last week. "I mean,
you're fucking crying in the video."
That's pretty ironic coming from him but I don't say anything. He would
kill me if he knew that I know about him and Catherine. We’re sitting in the
living room, eating Chinese take-out in front of the TV. Xavier and I had a
game earlier which we won, luckily. It was a lot tougher than our first game
and without Wren there it felt strange. I don’t know why a stupid part of me
thought she would show up when we haven’t spoken since she walked out.
“It’s embarrassing is what it is. For the both of us,” I say, running my
hands down my face.
“This sucks, we know it does, but these things blow over. People will
find the next thing for them to obsess over. We need to get through playoffs
into the finals and we need you on our team,” Xavier says, patting me on
the back. “We only just got you back.”
“I know, Z. You’re right. I need to speak to her about it,” I sigh,
stabbing some chicken with my fork.
“What is there to speak about? Just say sorry and move on. It’s not like
you said you hated her. In fact, you said the opposite,” Evan suggests before
shoving noodles into his mouth.
“I know but I shouldn’t have said it, that’s the thing,” I explain with a
huff, running my hand through my hair.
“Why not? Did you not mean it?” Evan asks curiously, poking around
his chicken before looking up at me.
“No, I did. I just don’t think me saying that, in that state, is a very smart
move for our relationship. Especially when we’ve just started dating.”
“You‘ve been together since the end of September, right?” Xavier looks
at me when the words leave Evan’s mouth. Shit. I almost messed this up
even more. I forgot that he doesn’t know that it was fake up until a few
weeks ago.
“Right, yeah. Regardless, I know how she feels about love. It’s still too
early to say things like that, y’know,” I reply with more confidence.
“Whatever it is, Davis, text her, talk to her, fuck her. Whatever you need
to do to get back into the game,” Xavier says sternly, pining me with a stare.
I roll my eyes and pull out my phone, waving it at him and he drops his
smile. I owe it to him and everyone on the team to keep my head on right
while we compete this season.
I pull up Wren’s number and shoot her a message.
Me: Hey. Can we talk?
Wren: Yeah. Florentino's tommorow at 3?
Me: That works. See you then.
*
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 43
WREN
Trying to avoid Miles is like trying avoid a test that you know you
have to take because no matter how many times I’ve tried to stop running
into him at the rink, he manages to be there every time. It’s not as awkward
as it was the day after we broke up but it still stings. It hurts the most when
I can hear him and his teammates around the corner and he’s laughing and
when he sees me he just blinks, not saying anything. I don’t either. We’re
always caught in a moment where we’re both too afraid to say something.
As if it will burst this uncomfortable bubble that we’ve created around each
other.
The last time I saw him still feels like a blur.
I forced Kennedy and Scarlett to watch me practice my routine,
needing the last minute tips before the finals. They were both by the boards,
watching me intently like I had asked and then Kennedy says what she’s
thinking, like always.
“Do you miss him?” she shouted into the silence.
“Do you have to ask me that right now?” I said back, trying to control
my breathing as I turn and glided down the ice.
“It’s just a question,” she sing-songed, trying to play coy.
“Yes, I miss him,” I admitted, the second the words leave my mouth
my stomach turns. “Is that what you want me to say? That I actually miss
him so much that it physically hurts that he’s not around anymore. That it
hurts that he’s not waking me up with kisses and his terrible singing. Is that
what you want me to say, Ken? Because it fucking hurts to even say it out
loud.”
They both stood there, watching me, waiting for something. Anything.
And because my life couldn’t get any worse, the sound of the hockey team
roared in my ear as they go towards their rink. I turned to look towards the
entrance of the rink, waiting for him to walk past, to look back, to have
heard what I said and somehow make it better. Is that even what I want?
Still, it stung like a bitch when he walked past, did a double-take and
continued walking.
Now, it's been a month since then. If I had known that that would be the
last time I saw him, would things be different? I don't let myself overthink
it. This is good. This is good for us.
It’s been a month of trying to avoid him at school and my friends trying
not to mention him since we saw him at the rink.
Part of me wishes that he at least tried to text me. To fight for this in
some way but I know he knows that I need space. That's the only way I'll be
able to heal. Because this is it, right? We're done.
Unfortunately, Scarlett and Kennedy have really fallen in love with all
of Miles’ friends. We spent most of our time over there before the breakup
and they even became some of my closest friends too. Now, the girls are
trying to stay loyal to me by not hanging out with them even though I told
them it’s fine. It’s also been a month of hard work, focusing on myself, and
doing things that I want to do.
It’s been a month of skating competitions and spending my afternoons
busting my ass off at the practice rink on campus. I’ve had to travel alone to
the competitions because they’re always at the most inconvenient times for
Scarlett and Kennedy to tag along. The first few comps were hell, but I had
the girls via FaceTime and Coach Darcy by my side.
Darcy wasn’t impressed about my latest scandal but she’s holding onto
hope that people will move on by the time the finals come around. I doubt
that’s going to happen. I’ve got used to the sour looks I’m given on my way
around campus and the nasty comment every now and then. There’s
something about people at NU and their need to hold grudges.
I thought that ending things with Miles was the best idea. We were both
too attached, and it felt like we were constantly being consumed by each
other. It makes sense to break up. I need to focus on skating and my classes,
and he needs to do the same. I spent so much time depending on him for
happiness. So much time being addicted to his touch, his smell, his voice. I
knew that once we slept together it would be another thing tying us together
and it would make it harder to turn back. It turns out that not seeing him has
made a small hole in my heart that only he could fill with his terrible jokes
and even worse singing. I can't say I don’t miss him because I do. So much.
But this is going to be good for us. It has to be.
Not having to worry about Miles has given me some more free time.
I’m still busy with training and competing but when I’m not doing that, I
can have time on focus on my writing. As soon as he came into my life, I
scrapped one of my dreams to focus on getting back on track. I’ve managed
to write another thirty thousand words of Stolen Kingdom over the last
month. Now, I spend lunches in between classes with Kennedy and Scarlett
at Florentino’s, reading over the latest chapter. I don’t know how Kennedy
is not sick of being here all the time when she still works here most days.
We use half an hour of our one-hour window talking over major plot lines
and the other half trying to study.
“You can’t end it like that!” Kennedy shouts almost knocking over her
coffee. A few people turn their heads and flash us a dirty look. I don’t know
how we haven’t got kicked out yet from the constant destruction we –
mainly Kennedy – cause.
“I’m not ending it like that, it’s just a draft of the ending,” I say, taking a
small bite of my scone. “I’m open to suggestions.”
“The only logical ending is that Carmen runs away and starts a new
empire,” Scarlett suggests with a shrug.
“Yes, that sounds better than her dying,” Kennedy groans dramatically.
“Wait, you’re making a sequel, right? Please tell me you’re making a
sequel.”
“I’m thinking about it. I need to focus on real work for class instead of
this. It’s not like I’m going to get it published,” I admit.
“You could. I’ll design a cover and you can self-publish like Gigi,”
Kennedy replies, almost falling out of her chair as her eyes widen.
“Thirteen-year-olds would eat that shit up.”
“It’s a possibility but it’s also a lot of work.”
“Since when are you afraid of hard work?” Scarlett asks with a sceptical
look. “Maybe not now but I really think you should in the future. With a bit
of editing, it would be perfect. I’m sure G would help you.”
“Maybe,” I say, trying to mentally add that on my thousand-word long
to-do list. “Anyway, I’m thinking of making Carmen fake her death and
then run away to start a new empire.”
“I hate that idea a little less,” Kennedy says thoughtfully before her face
lights up again. “Will she have a sidekick?”
“I’m thinking that Vita will go with her,” I reply.
“Isn’t she, like, a million years old?” Kennedy asks, flicking through the
printed sheets of my book in front of her.
“Yeah, but she’s in a middle-aged woman’s body. She’s basically like a
Cullen,” I say with a waft on my hand.
“Oh, that’s cool,” Kennedy agrees nodding her head. “I give you
permission to end it that way.”
“Why, thank you,” I reply, nodding my head towards her. Scarlett pulls
the paper out of Kennedy’s hand and looks over it with a serious expression.
They are both my harshest writing critics, but Scarlett looks more at the
intricate details more than anything. Kennedy just worried about how hot
the protagonist is going to be.
“So, talking about boys…” Kennedy drags out with a whistle.
“We weren’t,” I say with a bored tone. She ignores it anyway.
“How are things with he-who-shall-not-be-named?”
I roll my eyes at Kennedy and shake my head. They’ve not managed to
go a week without bringing him up and the answer is the same every time,
but they can’t let it go. They’re expecting me to just wake up one day and
completely forgive him and move on. To ignore every red flag and let
myself get distracted.
“There are no ‘things’ with him. We’ve not spoken, and I don’t think
we will for a while,” I respond with a huff.
“Can’t you guys at least be civil? It’s my birthday soon and I want to
invite his friends,” Kennedy says, chewing on her bottom lip. “Obviously, if
you don’t want me to invite them, I won’t.”
“Do whatever you want to do, Ken. I’ve got to go meet Austin before
practice,” I say dismissing her. Scarlett looks up from the papers and flashes
a small smile as I get up and walk out of the café.
*
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 44
MILES
“You’re lucky that I haven’t cracked your head open yet, Davis.”
Jake shouts another threat to me from the showers while I finish getting
ready in the locker room. Some of the team shout a ‘Yeah’ in agreement and
the howling begins. Again. We’ve just finished our quarter final game
which we almost lost. It was a close tie until the last few minutes of the
third period, and we managed to pull through. On top of all this unnecessary
shit from the team, I’ve got to go to my mom's 50th birthday party later
which I’ve been dreading all week.
“God, can everyone chill out? We didn’t lose, in fact we did the exact
opposite,” Tyler says with a sigh. They nod at me before dapping me up and
walking past me.
“We almost lost because you acted like you were out of your fucking
mind,” Jake spits, walking around from the showers.
“But we didn’t, that’s the whole point. Give him a break,” Xavier
retorts, drying himself off. Jake inches towards me, a nasty look on his face.
“I’m sick of giving poor Miles Davis a break. He needs to man up and
get his head in the game,” Jake shouts, squaring up to me. I'm sick of his
shit. I tower over him and glare. “What you gonna do, Davis?”
“You know exactly what happened last time we did this, Callahan,” I
bite out. “Step the fuck back.”
He stares at me for a minute, resisting to back down. Most of the team
are now gathered around us, ready for a fight to break out. Luckily for him,
he steps back out of my face and turns back.
“Listen, we’ve got one more game before the finals,” Coach begins,
standing at the door of the locker room. “There’s no point trying to blame
each other. All you need to do is work together on doing better.
Understood?”
“Yes, Coach,” we all say in unison.
A few more sly comments are thrown my way before I leave to go back
home. Each game day with the team has become another opportunity for
them to berate me. I’ve become an easy target after losing Carter. After he
died, the whole team was disappointed in me but with Wren’s help I was
able to turn that around. For the most part, other than Jake, everyone was
fine with the way I was playing. We’ve played well through playoffs, and I
was able to get a few goals in but then Wren and I broke up. I didn’t think it
would affect my performance, but my mind has been so distant. It’s just
become another thing that I can’t move on from. Another thing that I can’t
stop thinking about.
I knew that if I tried to stop her from leaving, she would still go. I’m a
distraction for her and the last thing I want is her future being jeopardised
because of me. Even when she acted like she didn’t like me at the
beginning, we were still hanging out nearly every day as part of the
contract. We were tied together in a strange way that neither of us could pull
away from as much as we tried to deny it. It was an instant connection for
me but for her, she could pull away just as easily. She's denying the part of
herself that wants this. Us. And that is what hurts the most. Even when I try
to not let her get into my head, she manages to weave her way in there and I
can’t focus on the game.
*
It’s not until after 1 AM when the party is finally over. The only people
left to clean up is me, my parents and Clara. Even though I was dreading it,
the party didn’t turn out to be as bad as I thought. I got to see tons of my
family that came from up and down the globe for my mom's birthday.
She was constantly showered with compliments and given hundreds of
presents which were mostly wine and flowers. The cake flip went well after
years of practice and the speeches automatically made my mom cry. We all
said something nice about her too – even me. I cheated a little and just said
that I’m grateful to have her as a mom. Because I am. As much as what she
did is still going to take time to heal, I’m ready to give myself that time and
the space for healing.
Clara has taken the backyard to clean up and dad’s taken the front. I
don’t know what mom has done but the living room is spotless again. I’ve
been trying to clean up the hallways, picking up paper plates and Solo cups
until I walk down the left corridor where the master bedroom is. The door
to my parents’ door is cracked open a few inches and I spot my mom in
there. She’s sat on the bed, still wearing her birthdays sash and crown as she
looks through photos on the bed. I try and look without being seen, ready to
walk past this private moment.
“Can you believe you were this small?” she says quietly, not looking up
from the photo in her hand. “I can tell you’re there, Miles.”
God, I must actually breathe really loud. This is not the first time
someone has been able to tell who I was without looking at me. I push
down the memories of Wren and her ridiculous talent as I walk into the
bedroom cautiously. I sit down on the king-sized bed, and I’m instantly
reminded of waking up in here on Christmas morning.
The bedroom is filled with large boxes as if they’ve just moved in. It’s
really just a lot of childhood memories like our baby clothes, birthday cards
and some of our old toys. They’re both too afraid to keep them in the
basement and they said it makes them feel closer to us when we’re away
from home. I take up one of the photos and it’s of me and my dad, riding
my first bike down our neighbourhood street. The memories look brighter
and even better than I remembered them.
“I remember this day,” I murmur holding up a picture of the first hockey
game I went to. I’m in a jersey five sizes too big for me, sat on my mom’s
knee with hockey cap on her head.
“I do too. You couldn’t keep still the whole time but every time I tried to
pass you to your dad, you didn’t want to go to him. You were such a
mommy’s boy,” she says ruefully.
“Yeah.” A wave of comfortable silence settles over us as we look
through the pictures. The memories seem so close yet so far away from
where I am now. I’m turning twenty in a few months and a huge part of me
still feels like a kid. A huge part of me still acts like a kid.
“I’m sorry Miles,” my mom says, snapping me out of my trance. She’s
still looking down at the pictures, running her finger across one of them. “I
ruined this bond between us last year because I couldn’t keep it a secret
from you for any longer.”
“I know, mom but I didn’t make it easy for you either. I just thought you
guys loved each other,” I whisper. She looks up at me and I can see the tears
lining her eyes. It’s hard thinking you know someone your whole life o then
realise some of it was a lie.
“I do love your dad and I love you and Clara more than anything. I
made a mistake, but your dad and I found each other again. The most
important thing is that we’re happy now.”
"Are you though? Happy, I mean?"
"More than anything. Thats all that matters."
“Yeah, I guess you’re right.”
“I’m always right, my love,” she says and squeezes my face between
her hands. “Did your team get into the finals?”
“Just about. The game is next weekend if you want to come?”
“I would love to,” she beams. “What about that girlfriend of yours? Will
she be there?”
“Probably not. She’s not really my girlfriend anymore,” I say, a sharp
pang jolting through my chest.
“Why not?” mom asks, her hand coming to rest over mine. “I know I
was a little weird that day, but you guys seemed lovely together. She was
really kind.”
“Yeah, she is. I just… I made a mistake, and I don’t think she’s ready to
forgive me,” I admit.
“Well, what was the mistake?” I explain to her what happened at Palm
Springs and to my surprise, she doesn’t judge me. Or us. “Well, take it from
me, it’s not easy to be forgiven. Those kinds of things take time but all you
can do is prove to her that you deserve another chance.”
Another chance.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 45
WREN
I know this routine like the back of my hand. It’s something I’ve been
working on and adding to over time for as long as I can remember. Coach
Darcy told me to save it for last in case I get into the finals and now, I’ll
finally be able to perform it in front of an audience.
The last few shows had a decent turn out although it was mainly the
other teams’ supporters that came. We’ve been up and down the state
competing. Nonetheless, coach and the dean are thinking about changing
the curriculum format a little to adjust to the way that people perceive
skating now rather than how it used to be. It just sucks that I wasted so
much time trying to boost my image for them to change their minds at the
last minute. The remaining five people on my team are trying hard to work
on drumming up support but it’s too little too late. With Miles and I’s
relationship going up and down, when we were together people were more
interested but then after the video came out, everyone has gone back to how
it was before. I’m counting on the rest of the team to get the support back
up to its standard.
As I glide on the ice, it finally sinks deep into me that this is what
everything has been leading up to. All the days where I would get nauseous
with anxiety and bust my ass all day, has finally paid off and I’m only doing
it for one person only. Myself. If my mom wants to live vicariously through
me, she can do that in the by-lines but I’m not letting her control me
anymore. I’ve found something liberating and brilliant about skating for
myself. I listened to what Austin said and I held onto the part of me that
knows I’m doing it for me. It doesn’t feel like I need to do it anymore. I
simply just want to.
The rink has stopped being a prison for me to work like a hamster in a
cage and it’s become my sanctuary. My home. I feel most alive when I’m
skating, when I’m able to let the music take me across the ice as if it’s
second nature. I’ve started skating with the girls and our friends at the
public rink in town and I can just enjoy myself. I can just live. And when it
stops feeling like that, I'm going to stop. I'm not going to force myself into
doing it to find what I once had. When it's not fun anymore, I'll find
something else. I'll have to.
After hours of practice, I go into the locker room and pull out my phone
to talk to Gigi. I had to schedule an appointment to talk to my friend. She’s
suddenly so busy with her series and doing her online classes that I’ve
hardly had time to talk to her. At exactly three forty-four my phone lights
up with a call.
“Hi, Emmy,” she says, followed by a long sigh.
“Hey, G, what’s the big news?” I ask, readjusting my socks on my
ankle. “If it’s something to do with Mr Dixie’s immune system, I don’t want
to know.”
“It isn’t,” she begins with a long dramatic pause. “I got a deal with
Tiger Publishing Agency.”
My heart almost breaks in half – part joy and part jealousy. She has
already made it so big as a semi-famous author through self-publishing, but
this is different. This is her big break. My best friend the author. What is
this life? As much as I am proud of her, I wish I could do the same.
“Oh my God, Gianna! I’m so happy for you. This is insane,” I exclaim.
She’s quiet over the phone for a second.
“It’s not insane. You were the one who told me you were sure that it
would get picked up,” she replies.
“Either way, it’s great. I am so proud of you, Gigi,” I say. “You should
come to Kennedy’s party tonight. It’s not going to be too crazy, and we can
celebrate your deal.”
“That’s exactly what my mom said but I’m going to stay home. We
could go out for lunch soon though?” she asks quietly. I don’t push her
anymore on it. Growing up with her, I’ve always known that she would take
a little longer than the rest of us to adjust to extreme social situations.
“That sounds good. I’ll text you later,” I say, standing up from the
bench. “Wish me luck for my competition.”
“You don’t need my luck, Wren,” Gigi says before ending the call. I
push down all the jealous feelings and try to be happy for my best friend.
This is it for her.
I grab my duffle bag from my locker and walk down to Coach Darcy’s
office. Her office is a large classroom that’s been converted into an office.
Even though she doesn’t need all the space, she somehow managed to snag
one of the coolest offices in the whole University. There was a rumour that
she used to live in here because the room was so big, yet she didn’t need to
use up all the space for the shrinking ice-skating team.
“Hey, coach. Are you ready to go?” I ask, walking through the open
door. Coach is looking at her cabinet full of trophies for the school, zipping
up her coat. I’ve spent way too much time in here to know a story about
every single trophy in the cabinet. A lot of which were won by my mom.
“Yes,” she replies without looking back at me. “Are you ready? This is a
big competition, Wren.”
“I’m ready. I’m excited, even,” I say, only half lying. The fact that I
don’t feel sick to my stomach is a good sign. She turns to me, her short
brown her swishing over her shoulder.
“You sure?” she asks, walking towards me. She places her hands on my
shoulders, squinting her eyes at me as if to study me. “All eyes are going to
be on you.”
“If you’re trying to scare me, it’s not working. I’m ready, Coach,” I say
bravely.
“If you say so, chèrie,” she whispers.
*
After realising that she’s going to take more than fifteen minutes to
change, I stand outside of my truck for Wren to finish getting ready. I don’t
know what to do with myself. How am I supposed to go about this
situation? I think this is her giving me that chance that my mom talked
about. Even though I spent more time kissing her than asking for that
chance. I had hoped that she would want to speak to me but that’s as far as I
planned.
Finally, she comes out of the main doors, wearing pink shorts and a
loose shirt, her hair tied back into messy bun as the flowers hang out of her
sports bag. She rolls her eyes playfully when I open the door for her to get
in. This is the Wren that I’ve missed. Who am I kidding? I've missed every
part of her. Once she’s in the car, I go back around to my side.
“You didn’t have to do that,” she says, fiddling with the hem of her
shirt, looking at the near empty car park.
“I wanted to.”
We’re quiet for most of the drive, not sure how to approach the elephant
in the room. We’ve not spoken in almost two months after she wanted to
end the contract and we just kissed in the changing room. I don’t know if
she just wants to pretend that never happened or if she wants it to happen
again. With the weird side glances she’s giving me, it’s hard to tell. I know I
have to say something when we’re parked outside of her apartment and
she’s not making an attempt to get out of the car. I angle my body to turn to
her but she’s still facing straight ahead.
“Wren. I’m really sorry about the video and about what I said. I
shouldn’t have gone to the bar that day and I especially shouldn’t have
talked to a random stranger about our business,” I say in one go, barely
breathing.
It’s better to get it all out now than pretend that we’ve been fine for the
last two months. She looks at me now, the darkness making it harder to
distinguish what colour her eyes are.
“It’s okay. I shouldn’t have pushed you away either,” she replies finally.
“I've thought about it a lot over the last few weeks and I forgive you. I
didn't make it easy for you when I left that morning and I've never been
good at communicating how I feel. It turns out that you weren’t the only
one who was hyper-fixating.” She laughs a little and it’s the kind of laugh
that could melt into my hands.
“I understand, though. You had a lot going on.”
“I think…I think I was just so afraid of what could happen that I never
gave it the chance to actually happen, y’know?” she explains, her eyes
suddenly glistening.
“I get that.” We’re quiet for a while. Lost between a moment of quiet
and comfortable silence. “Are we going to be okay?”
“I want to give this a chance, Miles,” she begins.
“But…”
“But I’m still scared. I have, like, a gazillion things going on in my
brain at all times and I don’t know how to handle it. If I can’t control it,
how will this work?”
“Let me help you, Wren. You’re so used to doing things on your own
that you’re pretty fucking stubborn. I want to experience life with you, no
matter how bad it gets."
“I want that. I want to let you in.” She places her hand on mine, holding
it tight without breaking eye contact with me. I feel so at home in her hands.
Like nothing else matters other than us in this moment right now. “Thank
you for coming today.”
“Thanks for not shouting at me,” I say. She laughs and pushes me in the
shoulder. Then something takes over her face. The lines in her face crease
slightly as it becomes hard and worried.
“Shit, Miles. What about your games? Did you get into the finals?
When is your last game?” she asks frantically.
“The seasons over, Wren,” I mutter solemnly. The memory of our last
game runs through my mind on a loop. I’m surprised I’ve not thought of a
reason to bring it up until now. "My parents even came to the game."
“What? That's great but I can't believe it's finished already.”
“Yeah, it finished last week,” I explain. She looks at me as if there’s
more to say, her eyes looking into me with an expectant glare. A wide grin
splits on my face before I lean into her and whisper in her ear. “‘We won.”
She pushes me away from her, pounding on my chest with her little
hands. “You almost gave me a fucking heart attack. I’m so happy for you.
I’m sorry I couldn’t be there, though.”
“It definitely wasn’t the same without you but you’re here now.”
“You’re right. I’m here now,” she says, biting on her lip and looking at
me the way that makes my dick jerk. Her eyes soften, a dreamy look in her
eyes.
“But,” I drag out, placing my hand on her inner thigh. I drag my hand
further up her leg until my hands are under her shorts, just reaching the line
of panties. “I know how you can make it up to me though.”
“Oh, you do?”
I don’t have to make any more subtle comments until she’s straddling
me in the driver's seat. Her hands rub from my shoulders till they cup my
face as she runs her thumbs just under my eyes in the gentle way that I like.
Cautiously, I pull back the seat so it can lie flat against the backseat.
Wren places her hands on my chest, looking over at my face between each
line - as if she's trying to memorise me - before her mouth meets mine. It’s
not frantic and desperate like our last kiss – it’s gentle and calming. Her
body falls softly against mine in a sigh when my hands travel from her outer
thigh up to her ass under her shorts. Her hands roam underneath my shirt as
her mouth explores across my jaw and my neck at a painfully slow pace.
“I missed you so much,” she whispers into my skin. I swear I feel every
hair on my body stand up when the words leave her mouth.
“I’ve missed you too,” I say back when I’m able to manage. She starts
to shift down my legs, pulling up my shirt so she can kiss from my neck and
down to my happy trail. An unknown sound leaves my mouth when she
nips and kisses at my lower stomach. She starts to work at my jeans, and I
take in a deep breath, ready for her to absolutely devour me.
A loud knock pierces through the heavy breathing. Her wide eyes lock
with mine as she tries to sit up. We stay still for a few beats, breathing in
each other's faces, acting as if we didn’t just hear it. I sit up on my elbows
with her and the knock sounds again at the window. It’s too steamy in here
to see but I hear a familiar voice outside.
“Miles, stop trying to get your dick wet and just tell me which
apartment it is,” Grey shouts, knocking rapidly on the window again. I wind
it down slowly and when he catches Wren’s eye, instead of stepping away
like a normal person, he leans his forearms on the window. “Hey, Wren.”
“Hi, Grey,” she says quietly, her words coming out more of a question.
She tries to climb off me, but I keep her there, her back resting again the
steering wheel.
“Dude, you could have texted me,” I say rolling my eyes.
“Yeah, I tried. It must have been hard to hear over all the moaning,” he
retorts, tilting his head to the side. He looks at Wren. “Not you. It was
mainly him.”
“Well, that makes me feel less embarrassed,” Wren says cheerfully. She
flashes me a mischievous grin before turning to him. “It’s 407.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 47
WREN
By the time we've ventured out of my bedroom, the party was very
much not over. I’ve seen more Kardashian’s in the last thirty minutes than I
have seen binging the show with the girls. I texted Scarlett to get ready too,
so we don’t have to leave Kennedy in anticipation any longer.
I’m still waiting for her to change so we’re hiding away from Ken in the
kitchen while she tells someone a dramatic story across the room. Watching
Kennedy talk without being able to hear what she’s saying, is one of my
favourite things. She always speaks animatedly with her hands and makes
every story she tells into a blockbuster.
“Can you just guess who I am?” Grey asks for the millionth time.
Miles’ body comes even closer time as if we’re not already attached at the
hip as we lean against the kitchen island. “I’m an actor.”
“Yeah, you’ve said that but it’s not making it any easier, dude,” Miles
sighs with an eye roll. Greyson looks at Harry who is dressed as Harry
Styles which was easy enough for him to do since they have similar
styles. He’s wearing dark brown leather flared trousers and a sweater vest,
and he painted his nails purple.
“I don’t know either,” Harry shrugs, trying his best at a British accent
but he still sounds Australian. Grey comes over to me again, his tanned face
close to me, his dark brown eyes staring into me. I can’t hide the smile
that’s creeping up my face as Miles’ expression turns hard with jealousy
just like it did at Sports Achievement Evening when I danced with Grey to
piss him off.
“Wren, I know you know who I am,” Greyson says sternly. I try and
hold in my laugh as I slowly bring my shoulders up and then dropping
them.
“You look like how you look every day,” I say quietly, gesturing to his
outfit. He shakes his head and inhales, taking a step back from me. Miles
comes closer to me again, wrapping his arm tightly around my waist, as if
we can’t be apart for longer than a few seconds.
“I’m Charles Melton, you dicks,” Grey sighs after taking a shot. We all
stare in confusion and the realisation washes over us almost at the same
time. “I wanted to do someone who was also Korean, y’know? I don’t
watch enough TV to even know who else is out there that you’d
recognise.”
“Well, at least now we know,” Harry says, patting him on the back as
Grey sulks away into the living room.
“Anyone want to take a stab in the dark and guess who we are?”
Michelle asks, leaning into Xavier who, for one of the first times, isn’t
wearing sweats.
Instead, he’s wearing a black suit that matches Michelle’s long black
gown. They are by far my favourite outfits that I’ve seen today. There’s
something so elegant about them. I only just got to know Michelle before
Miles and I broke up and I’m so ready to hang out with her again.
“Obviously, you’re Beyoncé and Jay Z,” I say. Michelle shoves her face
into her hands, laughing and throwing her head back.
“It was very limited for black couples to find a celebrity that everyone
would know,” Xavier explains. He raises his Solo cup. “Here’s to diversity.”
“Hear hear,” Miles says, raising his cup too and everyone agrees with
light chuckles.
“You are both very drunk and very right, Xavier,” I say, and he clinks
his cup to mine.
Without really known how, they break out into a conversation about the
Hollywood industry and the controversy it upholds. Being friends with
them, you never know which direction a conversation can take but that’s
what makes them all so interesting. One minute we can be talking about a
TikTok audio and the other we’ll be talking about oblivion.
“Oh my fucking God!”
I hear a scream that can only belong to one person.
The birthday girl.
Kennedy pushes through the crowd of people in the kitchen and when
she reaches me, she holds me out to her at arm's length. She takes a
prolonged look at me up and down. Miles backs away from me, giving Ken
the room to look at me properly.
“Her 1989 tour outfit?! How?” Her words come out in a breathless
hurry. I raise my eyebrows at Miles as if it to say I told you so. He sticks his
tongue at me and smiles wide.
“I have my ways,” I say coyly with a shrug. Her mouth hangs open as
she inspects my outfit again. She takes her time to feel over the sequins.
“We were meant to show her together!” Scarlett screams as she runs
around the corner in her costume. Kennedy repeats her same over dramatic
reaction over Scarlett’s outfit.
We tried to each go for an outfit that not only reflects Kennedy’s taste
and personality but two of the things that have cemented the bond we have.
Jennifer’s Body was our favourite movie growing up and we were all
obsessed with Megan Fox as Jennifer. It was the kind of movie we
shouldn’t have watched so young, but it became a comfort movie for us. We
also grew up in love with Taylor Swift and every single song she’s released
in her discography. Believe me, since Taylor’s Version of ‘Red’ came out,
we’ve listened to it nonstop. It just made sense. We just make sense.
I’m not surprised when more of our friends turn up and gush over our
outfits for most of the night. It was a hassle for us both to get such good
replicas of the real outfits but it’s definitely worth it. Scarlett, Kennedy, and
I huddled in my car to get away from the noise so we could FaceTime Gigi
who was dressed in her Kristen Stewart themed outfit. Because she has one
of the greatest minds, I've ever interacted with, she pulled parts of all of
Kristen's famous roles into one outfit. After enough socialising with Sophia
as Haley Kiyoko, Miles and I lock ourselves back into my room to have a
break before my social battery completely runs out.
“I missed you, Milesy. Like, a crazy amount,” I murmur as we lay on
our backs on my bed after getting to know each other’s bodies again. My
body aches from the competition but from the insane positions Miles just
put my body in, I feel like I could melt like butter in his hands. He rolls
over and presses a kiss onto my bare shoulder.
“You said that already,” he whispers into me.
“I know. I just really mean it, and this is probably the only time you’re
going to hear me say it again,” I say, playing off the aching in my chest as a
laugh. “I’m not used to saying all this sappy shit out loud.”
“I’ve missed you too.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 48
WREN
We finally make it back to Miles’ house after freezing our asses off in
the cold. His house has become a second home for me. I have way too
many clothes here and his bed has started to feel like my own. Waking up
here, in his bed, doesn’t make me want to freak out and run for the hills. It
makes me want to turn my head into his pillow, breathe in his scent, and
scream with happiness. Everything here is starting to feel like home. He is
starting to feel like home.
“Can we order food? I’m still hungry,” I sigh, as I grip onto him like a
koala while he plays on his PlayStation, his controller resting on my ass.
“You say this every time and then you never choose anything,” Miles
groans. I push myself up on my forearms when he throws the controller
onto the bed. I roll onto my back, and he immediately comes over me,
trapping me in with both his arms at the side of my head.
“I know what I want,” I demand. He tilts his head to the side, an evil
smirk playing on his lips. “I want to get Chinese but first…”
I drag out my sentence purposefully as I watch his dark green eyes
focus in on my mouth. I drag my tongue across my bottom lip before slowly
pulling into my mouth the way he likes it. He lets out a shaky exhale as his
face inches dangerously close to mine. His hair almost falls into my face
when his lips barley brushes mine as the air around us thickens. His hot
breath hovers over me without completely crossing the remaining space
between us.
“I want you,” I whisper. The three tiny words barely leave my mouth
before his mouth is covering mine in a hectic rush.
On instinct, I reach for the back of his curly hair, pulling him deeper
into me. I don’t know what comes over me whenever I’m around him but
suddenly I’m so hungry. Insatiable. My vision starts to blur when his tongue
coaxes my mouth open, and the warmth hits my throat. I whimper into his
mouth as his weight drops onto me. He leans up off me as if he hurt me and
quickly wraps his strong arms around my waist and flips us over until I’m
straddling him. Miles bites on my lip gently as he pulls away, looking up at
me with glossy eyes as he positions himself against the headboard. Both of
his hands come around my face, searching me.
“You’re so fucking beautiful, Wren. Just… devastating,” he breathes,
shaking his head in disbelief. My face instantly heats up and I smile into the
next kiss, letting my mouth explore his for a second. He starts to pull at the
first of my many layers and my sweater doesn’t budge.
“This is very unsexy, huh?” I pout, trying to pull my sweater over my
head as well. It gets caught with my other one and Miles yanks on it until
I’m free.
“Never.” He starts to pull off his own layers, his clothes getting tangled
like mine. I laugh as I try and work his jumpers over his head. His wild hair
falls free from the neck of his jumper, and he sighs deeply.
“Why does it have to take so long to get naked?!” I huff, rolling onto
my back to work down my jeans and leggings.
“I’m sure a relationship guru somewhere would have a field day with
this,” Miles laughs, sitting at the edge of the bed to undo himself of his
layers. I look over at his red face and I don’t hide the ridiculous grin that’s
spreading on my face.
“I guess we’re peeling back the layers of our relationship,” I beam when
he’s in nothing other than his boxers. I climb over to him on the edge of the
bed and sit in his lap. I hook my arms around his neck as his hands journey
up and down my bare back.
“Your puns are worse than mine,” Miles chuckles, pressing a kiss in
between my breasts. I snake my fingers into his hair when an involuntary
moan leaves my mouth as he starts to make his way down my chest.
“Yeah, but you love me for it.”
I don’t let time stop when I say it. I don’t overthink every single syllable
that just left my mouth. He doesn’t either. He just looks up at me, his mouth
on my rib cage, his eyes set in mine.
“Yeah, I do.”
*
After exploring each other's bodies and eating our food, we shower
together before slipping into bed in our underwear. Since we got back
together, we’ve spent a lot of time in these moments. The ones where we
just look at each other. Like, really look at each other. It would frighten me
if I didn’t enjoy it so much. Just looking at him, enjoying him, knowing I
have him.
His hands lie comfortably on my waist while I run my hands down his
broad shoulders to his back, not saying anything, just completely lost within
his comforting presence.
“Has anyone ever told you that you have a perfect body?” he whispers
out of the silence, and I start to laugh. He brings his face even closer to
mine so I can look straight into his eyes.
“What?” He pushes my hair out of my face softly and lets out a laugh of
his own.
“I just mean that you fit so perfectly with me. Here,” he explains.
“Oh, so that’s what you like about me. So, you don’t like my
personality?” I mock. He hums shaking his head lightly.
“Not really. I like this more,” he whispers carefully. He takes his hand
from my waist and runs it down my stomach until he touches me between
my legs, lightly brushing the inside of my thigh close to my heat.
“Especially the noise you make when I touch you there.”
“What isn’t there to like?” I whisper, my breath getting caught in my
throat at the contact of his hand. “About my personality, I mean.”
“You’re so stubborn and you act like you hate me most of the time.” He
shrugs, a cheeky grin spreading across his face,
“Well, you know I don’t. Not really, anyway.” I run my hands down his
back, pulling him closer into me. “I’m basically naked in your bed. What
more do you need?”
“I want you to tell me what you like about me.” He doesn’t miss a beat
when he speaks. His eyes suddenly fiery and expectant. I swallow. I try and
laugh but it comes out strangled as he keeps his gaze on me.
“Oh, you’re serious.”
Dead serious.
“Would it kill you to say one thing you like about me? Just one,” he
pleads.
“Your hair,” I say quickly. He almost jerks back at the sudden quickness
in my tone. It was the first thing that came to mind, and it truly is my
favourite thing about him. His hair is chestnut brown and wavy. It always
smells like coconuts, and it almost melts in my hands anytime I run my
hands through it.
“Really? Why?”
“Because I can run my fingers through it. I like it when I can slip my
hands between each of your waves, and it feels like you’re melting into me.
I like it when it’s the only thing that I can see when you’re between my
legs,” I admit, doing exactly that with my hands as he blinks at me. “I like
feeling you. Touching you. Sometimes, I feel like I’m so desperate to have
you. Everywhere. On me.”
He sucks in a breath at my omission, his cheeks becoming hot with heat.
God, what is happening to me? He looks beautiful like this, all flustered. “I
would let you do anything to me, Wren. Absolutely anything.”
“I know you would and that scares me a little,” I say laughing. He
doesn’t say anything, and it gives me the confidence to continue
complimenting him.
“And this,” I say, holding his face within one of my hands. His dark
green eyes stare into mine as I trace the space between them down his nose.
His Adam’s apple bobs as he swallows. I rub my thumb just beneath his
eyes as they flutter closed for a second before I run my finger gently over
his full lips, studying him. “I like your mouth but I like what comes out of it
more. I like it when you talk. When you tell me stories as if it's the first time
you're telling them How you're constantly giving me little pieces of
yourself. I like how easily your face fits into my hands. Like you were made
for me."
He watches me carefully, almost afraid to speak. I don’t know why I
said what I just said. I never say things like this. I love to read about it but
saying it out loud always cringes me out. Something has changed within
me, but I can’t find the effort to care about it right now. Instead, I press my
lips to his cautiously, drawing back at the last second as I catch his bottom
lip between my teeth. He smiles softly.
“Is that one nice thing good enough?” I ask against his lips.
“More than enough,” he whispers. “Now I know you don’t hate me.”
“I could never hate you, Miles. Even if I tried to. You are insufferably
addictive.”
The rest of the night, we stay mostly quiet. I don’t know what that
whole thing was. Something about it felt determining. As if it’s marked a
shift in our relationship. Everything I said was so true that it worries me.
It’s well into the night when I feel Miles’ thumb stroking my cheek and
my eyes flutter open, heavy with sleep.
“What is it?” I ask sleepily. He waits a beat, opening and closing his
mouth. I have to squint a little to make out the faint smile on his lips in the
darkness.
“You’re my best friend,” he says certainly. It comes out so quickly that
it almost passes as a question. My heart expands like a balloon, and I exhale
slowly to let it deflate.
“I don’t know how Kennedy and Scarlett will feel about it, but you’re
slowly becoming my favourite person,” I admit. “But don’t read into it,” I
add sharply before my eyes shut again, almost letting the sleep pull me
under.
“Oh, I already have, Wrenny.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 49
MILES
I’ve never been good at school. I’ve especially never been good at
exams. There’s something about the complete pressure and unwavering
nausea that I feel whenever I’m in the exam room. Maybe it’s my young
optimistic brain talking, but I think they are a way to prove how shitty my
memory is and how hard I find it to retain all the pieces of information that
I’ve learned in class. I’m thanking all my lucky stars for managing to get
through this second year at NU doing my fitness and well-being course. For
most of the course, it’s all practical assessments which I can usually do fine
on until the spring exam season comes around and I actually have to get my
head down to do work.
It’s been even more difficult trying to focus on anything other than
Wren fucking Hackerly. She has utterly consumed my every thought at the
worst possible times. If I’m driving to pick up food, it’s Wren. If I’m sat in
class, the only thing on my mind is when I get to see her. When I’m
training, all I can think is to count down the minutes until I can walk the
distance to her rink and skate with her for fun.
Above all, I’m struggling the most right now as she lies at the end of my
bed on her stomach, a paperback in her hands and a highlighter in her
mouth. She taps the pen on her bottom teeth repeatedly. The sound has been
driving me equal parts insane and horny. I’ve been sat here for an hour, not
able to even look at my textbook. I shouldn’t even feel this much desire for
her, considering we’ve been fucking like bunnies for the last few weeks.
All I can think about is how badly I want my mouth on her. How I can
see a sliver of her toned stomach poking out of her shorts and crop top.
How I know that if I put my hand up her shirt, I will be pleasantly surprised
to find that she’s not wearing anything underneath. I’m almost giving
myself paper cuts as I latch onto the book to avoid touching her.
“Stop staring at me, you perv,” she murmurs without looking up. I still
don’t know how she does it. Since the day I met her, she’s managed to sniff
me out without even batting an eye.
“How do you do it? Just tell me. Is it a superpower or some shit?” I ask,
finally shoving my textbook aside and coming down to lay next to her. I
was never going to get any work done anyway. I prop my arm up and rest
my head in it, watching her read.
“It’s not a superpower. Plus, I’ve already told you. You just breathe
really loud,” she shrugs. She looks at me, her brown eyes dancing with
delight. Her eyes scan my body before she returns back to her book.
“Especially when you’re turned on.”
I don’t have the energy to fight her on it. And I don’t have to look down
either so see how hard I am. You would think that I’m a pubescent teenager
who’s never seen a woman’s body before but there is something so
mesmerising about her.
“So, you’ve known this whole time, but you don’t want to do anything
about it?” I tease.
“Miles, I need to study,” she sighs her face still set on whatever novel
she’s reading.
I can’t resist any more, so I move my hand slowly to her waist, my hand
grazing the bare skin underneath her shirt. I can feel her shiver under my
touch, but she doesn’t break eye contact with the pages in front of her. I lean
over to press a kiss to her shoulder, and she squirms. She still doesn’t tear
her eyes away when I bite at her collarbone gently.
“Just take a break,” I whisper, placing a kiss in the spot below her ear.
Heat starts to creep up on her face, but she still doesn’t move. “Just five
minutes.”
“You said that last time and then you went down on me,” Wren whines
as if she hated it. I asked her to take a break and she obliged. In fact, she
was the one who started making love eyes at me and she practically begged
me to go down on her. Okay, maybe ‘begged’ is a bit of a stretch but she
was pretty enthusiastic by the way she was screaming my name and shoving
my face further between her thighs.
“Yeah, but that doesn’t count,” I argue, murmuring into her skin, before
pulling away to look at her clearly. Her cheeks have returned to their
famous red colour.
“I came. Twice. Doesn’t that count?” She looks at me now and I can see
how badly she’s trying to fight it. How badly she’s trying to resist me.
“Well, if we’re going by that logic then I guess I have you beat.” She’s
quiet for a minute, opening and then closing her mouth, trying to make
sense of what I meant.
“That’s why you were in the bathroom for so long,” she gasps, pushing
me in the shoulder until I’m flat on my back. She leans over me, loose
strands of her hair dangling in my face. The second her eyes connect with
mine, she forgets everything she just said and climbs on top of me. Both of
her knees fall onto the bed beside me, her hands brushing the hair out of my
face.
“Just five minutes,” she repeats with a shrug before diving into my
mouth. Our mouths meet and I swear I can feel myself floating outside of
time. These are the kind of absorbing moments which I live and breathe for.
They’re needed a lot more during this exam season.
The kiss deepens and becomes more frantic as she moves across my jaw
and down to my neck. The initial sensation makes me want to laugh but it
quickly turns into a satisfied groan when she starts to suck and bite me
gently.
I tell my brain to move my hands and I travel up her shirt, just reaching
underneath her tits. I didn’t know how cold my hands were until she
shuddered, naturally rocking her body into mine. I brush my thumb over her
nipple before slipping my hands out and pushing her down until her body is
flush against me.
Wren’s hands dive into the back of my head as she plants more kisses
down my chest. My hands slip between the material of her shorts and her
panties, but she shakes her head and rolls of me, leaving me panting and
hard. She scrambles away from me, sitting crossed legged on the other side
of the bed.
“What’s wrong?” I ask, kneeling up on my elbows.
“Miles, we’re never going to get anything done.”
“I don’t know if you’ve noticed but it’s really fucking hard to get
anything done when we’re in the same room,” I groan. She nods her head as
if this is as equally to upsetting her as it is to me. I crawl over to her and rest
my hands on her thighs. “Can’t I just touch myself while you work, or
would that be weird?”
“No,” she gulps. “I would just want to touch myself too.”
Her soft eyes connect with mine as her cheeks burn red. It doesn’t take
anymore silent glances before she moves from next to the window and lies
down at the top of the bed, propping her back up with some cushions. She
starts to pull down her shorts until she’s in nothing but dark panties and a
loose shirt. On instinct, I pull down my jeans along with my boxers as I
kneel between her legs, holding onto my throbbing cock.
“This doesn’t count, right? We can just do work after,” she whispers as
she starts to trail her hand from her stomach down to where she’s soaking.
She pulls her shirt over her head and throws it on the ground. I have to
swallow in a breath before nodding. “I would rather have you inside me,
Miles.”
“I know but if we do it that way, we’re never going to stop,” I admit, the
words both paining and calming me. I watch as she runs her hands from her
tits to her stomach and then back up, her eyes completely locked with mine.
“Do you touch yourself when I’m not here?”
She nods, pulling her bottom lip between her teeth. I shift on the bed as
I start to move my hands slowly up and down my length. Her breathing
starts to pick up faster as she runs two fingers over where she’s dripping on
her panties. I force myself to slow down so I can savour the moment.
Before I know it, she’s already pulled off her panties completely so she’s
bare in front of me. I loll my head back and close my eyes to take a deep
breath.
“What do you think about?” I ask hoarsely. She teases herself by
dragging her fingers down her pussy and back up, collecting her wetness.
Her eyes flutter closed. “Look at me when you’re talking to me, baby.”
She lets out a soft moan that almost undoes me before her eyes open
slowly. She immediately focuses in on my dick, and she swallows before
her eyes make a slow journey up my body to my face. She licks her lips as
her eyes zone in on me as she starts to rub circles around her core.
“I think about this…” she pants. “You. I think about you touching
yourself while I watch.”
“That turns you on?” She nods and her pace starts to quicken as she
shifts and moves up from the bed. I use one of my hands to press her
stomach down to stop her squirming. “What else do you think about?”
“I think about your hands on me. Everywhere,” she whispers, using one
of her hands to cup her tits and circle around her nipple. I start to move
faster around my shaft. “I think about the things you say about my body
when you’re inside me.”
“Like what?”
“About how good I feel around your cock. How our bodies fit perfectly
together. How you always take your time because you know it annoys me.”
Her words are broken up by pants and moans as she slips two fingers into
herself. “How you love the noise that I make when I come.”
That’s what undoes me. The breathiness and whine in her voice, mixed
with the complete bliss on her face while she touches herself is what
destroys me. Her eyes open and close as she moves her fingers in and out
on her as I do the same around my dick. It’s a lot different when I do this in
the bathroom when I can’t see her. But now, with her straining in front of
me, I know the orgasm is going to hit me soon. I move over to straddle her
stomach, my dick just inches away from her face and her breasts.
“Fuck, Miles,” she moans loud, ripping through the heavy breathing in
the air. I bend over her to kiss her on the lips, but her mouth is hanging open
between pants that she barley gets to reciprocate it. “I’m close. I need you
to touch me.”
“I’m not going to touch you. I want to watch you fall apart. Can you do
that for me?”
She starts to squirm and shift beneath me as her pace increases. The
sounds of her hands moving in and out of her make me move faster around
myself. She lets out a strangled cry as the orgasm rips through her. Wren
shakes and twitches beneath me as the high settles over her. Her eyes fall
closed for a second before she looks up at me and I lose it. My hand pumps
my dick a few more times as the sensation washes over me.
I groan as I come over her chest and her tits. Another constricted moan
falls from her mouth as I collapse beside her, careful not to crush her with
my weight. When our heavy breathing subsides, I peel myself off her to go
into the bathroom and get a warm cloth to clean her up. When I get back
into the room, she’s still lying down, her hand thrown over her eyes.
“See, that was better than doing work, wasn’t it?” I say as I climb over
her, pressing the cloth to her chest. She hums when the warmth hits her and
moves her hands from her eyes to look up at me.
“I guess,” she says sarcastically, an evil smile playing on her lips. I fold
over the cloth to the clean side and move it slowly over her breasts as she
watches me. “We really do need to get something done. You know what we
need to do.”
“I don’t think I do,” I groan. She slides out from beneath me and pulls
her shirt over her head. I fall backwards on the bed. She stands behind me,
leaning over me upside down. Her hair falls to cover us like a curtain when
she bends down and sets a tender kiss onto my lips but pulling back at the
last moment.
“Just text them.”
*
The only way we’ve managed to get any studying done is when we
have everyone at my house. I usually hate large study sessions, but we all
have a subject in common that we can help each other with. We’re not
always the most productive bunch but this close to exams, we’re all
stressing out, so we know we have to work hard.
Xavier, and I sit at one end of the dining table, working together on our
course, with spreadsheets and diagrams. Evan and Scarlett are trying to
work together but they’re doing more shouting than revising. Scarlett
wheeled over The Whiteboard 2 from their apartment to do some work on
and strangely enough, Evan has the same one but they’re arguing over who
has the correct equations. And Kennedy is the only one without an exam.
Out of all of us, she’s the most chaotic but somehow has her life together
more than the rest of us. She was able to finish her final piece early so she’s
helping Wren with her creative writing exam. They’re sat as far away from
us in the living room, so Wren and I don’t make an excuse to take a five-
minute break.
It was going well until Scarlett suggested that we order food, and all
concentration was lost. We’ve been trying to convince ourselves that it’s a
good idea to get some rest food. Really, we’re all sitting around the table,
stealing fries and chicken wings from each other as we take our very well-
deserved break, listening to 'Ivy' by Frank Ocean.
Perfection.
“I swear to God, if you try and take the same piece as me again, I’m
going to saw your hand off,” Scarlett warns Evan in a steady but deathly
tone. He raises his hands in surrender and sulks in his seat across from her.
“No weapons at the dinner table, kids,” Kennedy coos. Scarlett throws
her a sarcastic smile before sulking, mirroring Evan's position. Xavier
throws me a knowing glance and I make the mistake of looking at Wren
across from me.
If there were more seats at this table and if everyone didn’t rush to sit
down as soon as the food came, I would have made sure that Wren and I
were further away than we are. Instead, she’s sat across from me, staring
right at me as she licks off ketchup from three of her fingers. Fuck me. She
has got to be doing this on purpose.
“What are everyone’s summer plans?” Kennedy asks from beside me,
looking around at everyone expectantly. Obviously, the first one to jump on
the opportunity to brag is Evan.
“As soon as the semesters over, I’m off to Bali for a few weeks. Then,
my family have business in Tokyo and London so, of course, I’ll be going
with them,” Evan answers with a sigh, as if he’s actually upset about it. We
all look at him and try to hide our jealousy and disgust. Except Scarlett
make no effort to hide it.
“Ugh, gag me with a spoon,” she says, rolling her eyes.
"Happily," Evan replies. Scarlett actually gags this time. “Is someone
upset because the Voss empire is slowly crumbling?” Everyone watches
between them like a ping pong game.
“Don’t project onto me, Branson. It’s not my fault your buyers are not
getting any younger. Isn’t the CEO of your largest investor in adult
diapers?” she mocks coolly. He opens his mouth and then slams it shut.
“Yeah, I thought so.”
“Anyway,” Wren says, dragging her gaze from Scarlett to Xavier.
“What about you? Are you doing anything fancy?”
“If you’re wondering if I’m not going to be here so you guys can do
what you do every night, the answer is yes. I’m going to spend some time
with Michelle’s family in LA,” Xavier explains, looking between us both
suspiciously.
“Calm down, Z, you’re acting like that’s all we do,” I say when I notice
Wren slowly retreating back into her chair.
“It is kind of all you do,” Evan mutters. I throw a bone at him, and he
stares at it in disgust. He looks between me and Wren. “Are those your
plans then? For the summer?”
“Pretty much,” Wren shrugs, beaming at me with a toothy grin. “I’ll
probably be going up to Oregon a lot when my nephew comes, though.”
“Ah, I forgot his due date. When is it again?” Xavier asks.
Out of all the guys, he’s been the most enthusiastic about Wren’s
nephew. I love kids too. They are just tiny drunk adults and I find them
hilarious. But Xaiver has always loved kids. He has three younger siblings,
so it’s always been in his nature. He has this innate desire to be a dad. If he
wasn’t in NU, he and Michelle would have at least five kids by now, I'm
sure of it.
“In a few days hopefully,” she replies. Xavier nods and we all dig back
into our food before it gets cold.
Spending more and more time with these guys has made life a little
more bearable. We get a live action comedy show by watching Scarlett and
Evan interact. We have some rational thoughts from our very own
peacekeeper, Xavier. Wren and I are often the butts of the jokes that
Kennedy makes. We work well together. Somehow. Finding friends like
these isn't easy to come by and I thank my lucky stars every night that I'm
stuck with them.
“How much are you betting that we’ll all get back to work after this?”
Xavier asks when we are all stuffed and bloated from too many wings and
pizza.
“I'm betting my life savings that we’ll all get back to work but less than
ten minutes in, these two,” Scarlett starts, gesturing between Wren and me.
“Will think of some lame excuse to go to the bathroom together.”
“Can we stop with the sex jokes?” Wren says laughing. “You’re all
acting like you’ve never been around two people that have regular sex. It’s
concerning.”
“I was just asking a genuine question,” Xavier says with a shrug, but I
can see the smile creeping up on his face.
“I know you were, Z,” Wren replies calmly before her voice climbs up.
“I’m on about everyone else. Miles and I fuck. So what? Matter of fact,
that’s exactly what we were doing before you guys came.”
I look at her in amazement shaking my head and everyone starts to
laugh. She’s been trying to hide how annoyed she gets when they make
those kinds of jokes, but I didn’t think she would actually say something
about it. I don’t mind the jokes. Not at all. As long as they’re always
concerning us and that she’s no sleeping with anyone other than me. She
scrapes her chair out from the table and walks over to me. Everyone’s
laughter is still dying down, so they don’t notice when we slip out of the
room.
“I think we should do it now, just to piss them off,” Wren smirks as she
runs up the stairs.
“You’re insane.”
“Am I? Or am I just practical?”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 50
WREN
After spending a few days with Austin and her new little family,
coming back home was bound to be chaotic. I was on edge, waiting for
Zion to get down on one knee. But when I realised he wasn’t going to do it
with his future wife’s little sister around, I kept my distance. I tried to time
my trip perfectly so I could be back in Salt Lake when our grades are put in
the system.
The girls and I all sat around the kitchen island, loading and reloading
our grades while on FaceTime to Miles, Xavier, and Evan. After a few
refreshes and crossing our fingers, the page loaded up with our grades.
We all passed. I don’t know how we managed to get through it, but we
did. We found any excuse to have a group study session without actually
studying. But somehow, those days when we actually put our heads down,
paid off.
To celebrate, we got a table for the six of us at Juno’s. After hyping it up
for so long, they finally agreed to eat here with me. It feels more hectic than
just going here with a pregnant lady during the lunch hour. Instead, we’re
crammed in a back booth, trying to shout at each other over the noise
coming from the bar. I’m practically sitting on Miles’ lap as he sits on the
outside of the booth. Across from him, Evan sits as far away from Scarlett
as possible while she scooches up next to me. In between them, Kennedy
and Xavier are squeezed in together.
“I just don’t understand how we all passed,” Miles says, taking a sip of
his Coke.
“It’s because I manifested it,” Kennedy says as if it’s the most normal
thing in the world, tapping onto her temples. “We didn’t chase. We
attracted.”
“I’m just going to pretend that I know what that means,” Miles
mumbles. He brings his hand under the table, squeezing my thigh and
pulling us even closer together. His touch on my body has started to feel so
natural. As if this was always meant to happen.
“Manifestation isn’t real,” Evan guffaws. Scarlett shoots him an evil
look, but he misses it.
“I wouldn’t say that if I was you,” she singsongs. Kennedy pins him
with an angry expression, and he slowly slouches in his chair. I’ve had
countless conversations about astrology with her, so I’m not surprised when
I zone in and out of the conversation.
My gaze automatically shifts to Miles. He’s watching between the four
of them as they argue, not saying anything. Just observing. Something has
changed in him, and I can’t figure out what. There’s still the sarcasm and
the wit that I fell for, but he’s become more relaxed. Smoothed out. He
doesn’t feel the need to prove anything, and he just exists. With me.
I have too. I don’t hate the idea of saying cheesy things every now and
then to the people I care about. What I didn’t expect was for my life to turn
into one of the rom com’s that I love. The ones that always feel so out of
reach. But I fucking love every part of it.
It feels like that song, 'golden hour' that Miles always plays. The lyrics
go through my head on repeat.
We were just two lovers, feet up on the dash, drivin' nowhere fast.
Burnin' through the summer, radio on blast, make the moment last.
“Stop staring at me, you weirdo,” Miles murmurs, still watching the
argument unfold in front of us.
“I see you’ve learnt my trick,” I laugh, nudging him with my shoulder.
“I don’t think I have. It was a fifty-fifty chance you were either asleep
or looking at me,” he laughs, turning towards me and he adds sounding like
Schmidt from New Girl, "Because who can resist this face, right?"
I shake my head at that gorgeous face of is, sticking my tongue in my
cheek so I don't laugh. My breath hitches when his hand moves even further
up my thigh, but his face remains focused, as if he isn’t about to make this
meal much more interesting. Instead of trying to ruin the night with my
libido, I squeeze his hand between my thighs and his journey stops. I hook
my right leg over his left one and his thumb starts to rub small circles on the
inside of my thigh.
“Do you not think we’re close enough already?” I ask, trying to keep
my voice low as the voices around us die down. I can feel their eyes on me,
but I keep mine locked with Miles’ green ones.
“At every table, I’ll save you a seat,” Miles whispers.
If I couldn’t hear the way my heart started pounding in my chest, I’m
sure it would have fell straight though my ribs. When the unsettling
thrumming noise stops, a smile creeps up on my face before it turns into an
ugly laugh. A real, shoulder shaking, laugh of disbelief. Miles’ face drops.
“Are you seriously quoting Taylor Swift to me right now?” I ask, barely
able to let my laugh settle.
“Yeah, well, you already know how much I love you. I've said it when I
was drunk, and I said it out of anger, and I knew you wouldn't let me say it
again on its own. That's boring.”
“You just did.”
My words sound so far away from us. As if I’m floating outside my
body, watching and letting myself slip into this moment where I never
thought I would end up. Here, in a bar restaurant with five of my best
friends, and my boyfriend telling me that he loves me for the first time. He
loves me and I believe him.
“Oh, yeah. I did,” Miles murmurs.
I put my hand on his cheek tenderly, turning his face closer to mine. I
act as if we’re the only people in the room. As if nothing else exists other
than us, right here, in this moment. I press my lips to his and I kiss him
softly. It’s the kind of kiss that could spiral out of control if you let it. The
kind of one that leads to many more, but I don’t let that happen. Instead, I
pull away until we’re centimetres apart.
“I’d save you a seat too.”
The second I let us slip away, we’re met with groans and gags from the
rest of them. The only person who’s smiling is Xavier. Sometimes, I feel
like he’s the only one out of all of us that actually understands what it feels
like to be this in love. No matter how scary it is.
More music comes to mind. This time, it's the first-dance remix of
'Lover' by Taylor Swift. When did I start doing this?
“Can you believe we’ve only got two more years of this?” Scarlet asks,
nostalgia drowning in her eyes. Everyone turns to her and suddenly, the
mood has shifted into a calming silence. “Like, we’re going to be doing real
people shit soon.”
“I don’t think I’m ready for adulting yet,” Kennedy groans, shoving her
face into her hands. "Do you think we'll still be friends in five years from
now?"
"If Scarlett and Evan don't kill each other before then, sure," Xaiver
replies and we laugh. "You guys believe in different universes and shit,
right?"
"Of course," Kennedy beams. I nod and so does Miles, Scarlett and
Evan.
"Well, I think that in another universe we would still be friends. I think
we'd make it to each other somehow. I mean, if it wasn't for Wren and
Miles, we wouldn't be sitting here right now. Maybe you girls would be on
one side of this resturant and us on the other, celebrating our grades, not
even knowing that we're existing in the same time frame. Do you ever think
about that?"
"Shit, man," Evan murmurs. "I think about that all the time. But actually
hearing someone say it is crazy."
"I definitely think we'd still be friends in a different universe," Scarlett
mentions and we all agree.
“I didn't mean for this to go all existentialist, I just wanted to say that in
a few years, I want to be living by the beach.”
“No one is stopping you, Ken,” I say with a shrug. “I’m getting out of
here as soon as I can.”
“Me too,” Xavier sighs. “I want my own family.”
“Is that what Michelle wants?” Miles asks from beside me, his hand still
on my thigh but I feel him everywhere.
“She’ll do anything I want to do. The same way you’d do anything
Wren asks you to,” Xavier laughs but Miles isn’t. He looks down at me, a
quiet smile playing on his lips.
“You are extremely whipped, my friend,” Evan says, shaking his head at
us. I don’t have the energy to fight him on it and neither can Miles. He just
looks down at me like we’re the only people truly existing now.
“I am,” Miles says proudly. “I will follow you around Barnes and Noble
and hold your books for you for the rest of my life.”
"Are you sure? I get a lot of books," I murmur, raising my eyebrows.
“And I'll hold every single one for you.”
*
The rest of the meal goes by in a haze. We talk about the same four
topics on rotate, somehow managing to put a spin on the same topic we’ve
been discussing for weeks. The only constant I could focus on was Miles’
hand on my body. The way he needs to rest it on me as if I’m going to slip
away. Even on the drive on the way home, his hand grips onto my thigh as
he drives me and the girls to our apartment. When we’re standing in the
doorway once Kennedy and Scarlett have gone inside, his hand rests
comfortably on my waist as my back hits the door.
“I meant what I said earlier, Wren,” Miles says, breaking the
comfortable silence.
“I know.”
“I’m going to say it again. I’m warning you before you freak out on
me,” he says, raising his eyebrows. I pull him in closer from the hem of his
shirt.
“I want to hear you say it again.”
The darkness of the hallway has given me more confidence than it
should. I’ve been testing the waters, barley dipping my toes in, trying to feel
how it would be. I want to jump straight in. I want to fall and never come
back up for air so long as I get to spend it with him. I knew from the
beginning that as much as I tried to avoid it, I was bound to fall for him.
He's my person.
“I love you, Wren. You’re my best friend and I love being around you. I
love being there for you and protecting you even when you don’t want me
to and I’m in love with you. So desperately. I don’t think I would ever be
able to stop loving you. If you try to push me away again, I won't let you.
Because I'm in this, okay? Me and you.”
"Well, how am I supposed to compare to that?” I laugh.
I don’t know why I joke. I don’t know why I can’t just say it right off
the bat. Just tell him how I knew that I felt this way about him since we
talked in the diner after Sophia’s party.
“I love you, too. You're what's good for me, Miles. In every universe,
it's me and you."
“Me and you,” he repeats, smiling. It’s the kind of smile that makes my
heart double in size. The kind of smile that makes this whole thing a little
less daunting. When I think he’s going to lean down and kiss me, he pulls
me into a tight hug instead and my arms wrap around his middle, holding
him close so I can hear his heartbeat. “Are you still scared?”
“A little.”
“We’ll be alright.”
OceanofPDF.com
Epilogue
The Summer
MILES
The ceremony is special and it’s overly romantic, but it is not short.
Wren had to stand in her light blue maid of honour dress at the front of the
wedding isle in the patch of green grass at the wedding venue. I had to sit in
the line of chairs in the blistering sunlight as we waited for more guests to
arrive.
We exchanged private moments between us as we couldn’t speak while
Wren and the other bridesmaids waited for the ceremony to begin. Even
when Austin came down the aisle in a luminous white wedding dress, all I
could focus on was Wren, beaming, with fresh happy tears welling up in her
eyes. Even when Marley started crying on Zion’s mom’s knee, I still
couldn’t tear my eyes away from her. Being here in the sun, her freckles
have appeared on her face and down her arms. It felt like we were out there
for hours as the wedding ceremony moved on around us, our eyes locked
most of the time.
When we finally get out of the heat, we’re entered into a large room
with the AC on – thank God – where all the food and drinks are served.
Jamaican food is absolutely insane. I could live here for the rest of my life.
I follow Wren around like a lost puppy, holding her bag as she greets all
of Zion’s family and some of her family too. She gives an emotional and
funny maid of honour speech which has almost the entire room in tears. I
keep my hands on her most of the night. When Zion and Austin have their
first dance to ‘Is This Love’ by Bob Marley, we dance from a distance, her
head resting on my shoulder as I rest my hand on her hip, swaying us to the
music.
“They look so happy,” Wren whispers into me. I brush her shoulder
with my hand reassuringly before she starts to cry for the hundredth time
today.
“They do. But for the love of God, stop crying."
"I can't help it," she sobs into me. This woman. I rub circles on her back
and change the subject.
“I like that they have a song just for them. Do we have one?”
She looks up at me as if I offended her. I can’t help but laugh at her
sudden change of expression from sadness to near anger as she sniffles.
“Of course, we have a song, Miles, and you know which one it is,” she
says matter-of-factly. I shrug, trying to rack my brain for an answer. “Do
you think I’d be still dating you if we didn’t have a song?”
“I’ll try not to take that personally,” I murmur, and she pushes me in the
shoulder.
“Come on.”
She pulls at my arm as she starts to walk through the crowds of people
in the room and leads us through the door. She drags us down the corridor
of this fancy hotel until we get to a dark corridor, where the lights only turn
on the further, we walk down. She looks into some of the rooms as if she
knows her way around perfectly. When we get to the end of the corridor,
she jingles the door handle to the right and opens the door which lead to a
flight of stairs.
“Where are we going?” I ask as she starts to sprint up the stairs.
“I know a shortcut,” she pants, her ass swaying in my face.
“How? We’ve literally been here a week.” She ignores this with a laugh
until we reach the top of the first flight of stairs to another door which she
opens with ease. We’re in darkness for a few beats before a light turns on
and we’re somehow back into our suite.
“How?” I ask breathlessly as I cross the bedroom into the open living
room and kitchen area, looking back to the door where we came out of.
“I have my ways,” she shrugs, looking through her bag from under the
couch. She pulls out her speaker and holds down the button to connect it to
her phone.
“You’re insane,” I say, walking over to her. Her blonde hair that she
curled especially for today falls down across her face and I brush out a
strand from her eyes before pulling her further into me. She blinks up at me
smiling as if we’re the only people in the world.
“I know,” she says cheerfully as she sets the speaker on the kitchen
island. “Come and help me move this out of the way.”
We take a while to move the couch out of the way along with the few
chairs that scatter the room and the coffee table until there’s a large space in
the middle only holding the carpet. Now we’re both sweatier than ever in
the heat as I huff and stare at her. She has a daring look on her face as she
grabs her phone from the kitchen before returning to stand in front of me.
“You can have one guess to what our song is,” she demands, her green
eyes staring up at me, as she tugs on my tie and pulls me into her.
“I’m guessing it’s a Taylor Swift song based on your excitement.” She
nods waving her phone between us suggestively. “I don’t know, Wren. I’m
sorry.”
“Don’t be sorry. Just be grateful you have a super cool girlfriend with
impeccable music taste,” she says with a flourish, as she hits play to the
song she’s chosen. My heart expands as soon as the instrumental begins and
the moment that she played this to me for the first time hits me. “See.”
She throws her phone on the couch as she snakes her hands around my
neck as the first verse to 'You Are in Love' by Taylor Swift plays over the
speakers. I wrap my arms around her waist as she brings her body closer to
mine and we fit together perfectly.
“Do you remember what happened when I played this for you?” she
asks as she sinks into my chest, her arms falling loose around my neck.
“I was driving us back from the gym and you insisted on putting a song
on. You put this on, and I said it was good, but it felt like you were trying to
subconsciously convince me to fall in love with you. Like you were trying
to manifest it or something. You then told me that that’s never going to
happen, but you thought it was one of the best love songs,” I explain, as we
sway back and forth to the music.
“And then what happened?” She starts to laugh into me, knowing what
I’m going to say. I press a kiss to her head, and I chuckle into her.
“Then you fell in love with me.”
“I did,” she laughs softly before breaking away from me to look up at
me. “I really did and hard too.”
We stay close to each other as the song plays on a loop, letting the
words settle around us. You can hear it in the silence. You can feel it on the
way home. You can see it with the lights out. You are in love. True love.
That’s exactly what it feels like being so desperately in love with Wren.
I can feel her everywhere. It feels like no matter where I go, where we are,
there’s always something tying us together. There’s always that true,
consuming kind of love that lingers between us whenever we’re around
each other. If a pink heart was a person, it would be Wren. She makes me so
happy that it almost makes me queasy when I think about it too much.
I don’t get time to think before her phone starts to ring through the
speakers. She groans into my chest as we waddle towards the phone, her
arms tightly around my waist, not baring to look at it.
“It’s Scarlett,” I say when I catch a glimpse of her phone. She groans
even louder. “Maybe something’s wrong. You should answer it.”
“Fine,” she moans pulling out of my grasp to answer the FaceTime. She
falls into the couch which is now at the far end of our suite, and I sit next to
her, sweeping her into my lap.
The phone lights up with a puffy faced Scarlett as her phone balances
on the kitchen island of their apartment while she stands across from it,
leaning against the sink with her arms crossed.
“Hi, Scar, what’s up?” Wren asks, smiling into the camera. I lean my
face into the frame and wave. Scarlett rolls her eyes at me. We’ve
developed a very strong love-hate relationship which I don’t mind. Wren
has been trying to convince me that she doesn’t actually hate me but it’s
hard to know sometimes.
“Hi,” she says sharply. “I have a question to ask.”
“Shoot,” Wren replies, pushing her hair out of her face.
I notice her necklace in the camera screen and the clasp has fallen to the
front. I move my hands gently over her and pull it around the right way. She
presses a kiss to my cheek as a thank you before turning her attention to
Scarlett.
“You guys are disgusting,” Scarlett huffs. “Anyway, have you seen The
Whiteboard anywhere? I don’t know how I can’t find it. I only have the one
that I use for school not our one.”
“How could you lose The Whiteboard? It’s huge,” Wren replies, and
Scarlett shakes her head with a short laugh. “I haven’t seen it in a while.
Our lives have been pretty put together recently so we haven’t needed it.”
She’s right. Since we finished our exams, we settled into a comfortable
rhythm with our friends where we can actually get work done as well as
hanging out. Kennedy is always working on a new project for class and
giving us free drinks from Florentino’s. Xavier and I have been training like
crazy and going on double dates with Michelle and Wren. Evan and Scarlett
are still constantly arguing about whatever assignments they need to do for
business class, finding new ways to insult each other. Wren is working the
hardest out of all of us; still working on her writing and skating while trying
to juggle the relationship with her mom.
“Huh,” Scarlett says disbelievingly. “What about you, Miles? Have you
seen it? At your house, perhaps.”
“Uh, no... Why would it be at my house?” I ask with a sceptical look.
Wren looks up at me and widens her eyes and I realise what she meant. She
probably thinks Evan has taken it. Typical. “Have you asked, Ken?”
“No, Miles, I haven’t asked the one person currently living with me
right now,” she retorts sarcastically. “I have a feeling someone has taken it,
but they won’t own up to it.”
Something catches her eye above the screen as she glares as if she’s
talking to someone indirectly. Wren and I give each other a suspicious look
before we turn back to Scarlett whose face has suddenly turned a deep red
colour. I can't tell if she's blushing or if she's pissed.
“What? Do you think Evan took it?” Wren asks. Scarlett waits a beat
before turning her attention back to the screen.
“I know he took it,” she bites out.
“Scar…” Wren says slowly. “Please don’t tell me he’s with you right
now and you’re holding him hostage.”
“I’m not holding him hostage,” Scarlett says rolling her eyes. “I asked
him to come over and he was stupid enough to agree.”
She slowly pans the camera around to face the other way and that’s
when we both see him. Evan is sat in a dark blue suit in their apartment
with his arms crossed against his chest. He doesn’t look like he’s being held
hostage. He looks too comfortable. Like he’s enjoying it. He smiles at the
camera before blowing air up to push his blonde hair out of his face.
“Hey, guys. I hope you’re having a good time,” Evan begins with a
smile. “Jamaica is beautiful. I’ve been a few times-”
“Shut up,” Scarlett demands, pulling the phone around to face her again
but this time she holds it closer to her face.
“Scarlett, you’re insane,” Wren says, laughing. I can’t help but laugh
too at the fact that she seems so used to this. As if this is a completely
normal Scarlett thing to do.
“Whatever. I need to get it back, like, now.” She pulls the phone closer
to her face so we can straight into her green eyes as she lowers her voice.
“I’m having a crisis, Wren.”
“I’m sorry, Scar. I’m sure Kennedy can help you out. I’m coming home
in a few days; can you hang on until then?” Wren asks, scrunching her nose
up. Scarlett opens her mouth about to speak but Evan butts in.
“What’s the crisis?” Evan asks loudly. “I’ll help.”
“I would rather gauge my eyes out than ask you for help,” Scarlett
replies with a disgusted glare, shuddering, before ending the call.
THE END.
OceanofPDF.com
OceanofPDF.com
Acknowledgements
OceanofPDF.com
Books In This Series
North University Series
In this steamy, heartwarming and hilarious series,
three college students navigate the truths of what
their future careers may hold and the love and hate
that comes along with it.
The series is set in Salt Lake City, Utah and the first
novel focalises on Wren Hackerly, star figure skater
at North University in her fake dating plot with
hockey team captain Miles Davis. Wren has always
been independent and she sticks to a strict routine.
There is no way in hell that she'd change that.
Especially not for a man. But when fake dating Miles
becomes her only hope at staying on the team and
keeping Miles off the bench, she can convince herself
that it's all for a good cause. Right?
OceanofPDF.com
STAY IN TOUCH!
Instagram - @janboswellauthor
Tiktok - @janboswellauthor
Sign up to my email list to be the first to hear about
bookish news -
https://substack.com/profile/99039411-janisha-
boswell?utm_source=substack_profile
OceanofPDF.com